Skanda Purana 07 (AITM)
Skanda Purana 07 (AITM)
Skanda Purana 07 (AITM)
S K A N D A -P U R A N A
PART V U
M O T IL A L B A N A R S ID A S S P U B L IS H E R S
P R IV A T E L IM IT E D • D E L H I
F irs t E d itio n : D e lh i, 1 9 5 1
PR IN T E D IN IN D IA
B Y JA IN EN D R A PR A K A SH JA IN A T SH R I JALNENDRA PR ESS.
A -45 N A R A IN A , PH A SE I, N EW D ELH I 110 028
A N D PU B LISH ED BY N A R E N D R A PR A K A SH JA IN FOR
M O T IL A L B A N A R SID A SS PU B LISH ER S PR IV A T E LIM IT E D .
B U N G A L O W R O A D . D EL H I 1 Ю 007
CONTENTS
SKANDA PURANA
Book II: VAISNAVAKHANDA
Section VII: VAISa KHAMASA-MAHATMYA
Chapters
1. The Greatness of the Holy Bath in VaiSakha 1
2. The Benefit of Different Kinds of Charitable Gifts 3
3. Charitable Gifts (Continued) 7
4. The Holy Rites to be Observed in VaiSakha 11
5. The Excellence of VaiSakha 15
6. The Story of a House-Lizard 18
7. Salvation of a PiSaca (Goblin) 23
8. Daksa’s Yajfia; Parvali’s Birth etc. 27
9. The Birth of Kumara 34
10. Glorification of the Gift of UmbrelIas:The Story of Hemakanta 41
11. The Anecdote of King KIrtiman 48
12. Yaina’s Lamentation 57
13. Yama is Consoled 60
14. Liberation of a PiSaca 66
15. Story of a Ruler of PaiicaladeSa 70
16. The Paiicala King Attains Sayujya 76
17. Story of Dantila and Kohala 81
18. Previous Birth of the Hunter 86
19. The Curse of Wind-god 92
20. The Bhagavata Dharrnas 98
21. Birth of Valmiki ч 106
22. Liberation ofPitrs 111
23. The Greatness of Aksaya TrtTya 120
24. Salvation of a Bitch: Importance of DvadaST 124
25. The Conclusion 132
B ook I I : VAISNAVAKHANDA
CHAPTER ONE
Suta said:
1. Once again, the king (Arhbarlsa) asked Narada, the son of
Brahma Paramesthin, about the meritorious greatness of the month
of Vaisakha.
Ambarlsa said:
2-6. The greatness of all the months has been truly heard by
me from you, О Brahmana, formerly. It was then said by you that
among these months Vaisakha was the most excellent one. Hence,
О Brahmana, I have great curiosity to hear the greatness of the
month of Vaisakha. How is it that this month is dear to Visnu?
What are those holy rites which Visnu likes to be performed in the
month that is a favourite of Madhava? Out of these too, what are
those holy rites most dear to Visnu and worthy of being per
formed? What is to be given as charitable gift? What is its ben
efit? With whom (what deity) in view are we to perform these
* Vail&kha is another month which is favourite with Vi$nu. In PdP, Patala Khanda,
Ch. 84, as a background of this Mahatmya, we are told that once Narada went to
Mathura to see King Ambari$a, a great devotee of Krsna (vv 8-10). Vmsakha-Mahatnmt
is thus a dialogue between these two.
1. This benedictory verse shows that Vai£akhm2sa-Mahatmya (VM) is an inde
pendent work incorporated in SkP. We have a VM in PdP V (Patala-Khanda). Chs.
84-98.
2 Skanda Purana
Narada replied:
7. Formerly, on being asked by me, Brahma described the
ancient (traditional) holy rites pertaining to the different months
as had been described previously to Sri by the Supreme Atman
(Visnu).
8. Thereupon, some months were particularly mentioned (such
as) Karttika and Magha. Madhava (Visnu) made Vai£akha the
most excellent one among the months.
9-14. (The month of VaiSakha) is the bestower of the desired
things upon all the living beings, like a mother forever. It is the
destroyer of all sins by means of charitable gifts, holy rites and
ablutions. It is the essence of all virtues (religious acts), Yajnas
and holy rites. It is the essence of all austerities. It is worshipped
by Suras.
Like the Vedic lore among all lores,1 like Pranava among all
Mantras, like the divine Kalpa (wish-yielding) tree among trees,
like the Kamadhenu (wish-yielding cow) among all cows, like
£esa among all serpents, like Garuda among all birds, like Visnu
among all Devas, like Brahmana among all castes, like the vital
air among the dearest objects, like wife among intimate ones, like
Ganga among all rivers, like the sun among luminaries, like discus
among all the weapons, like gold among all metals, like Rudra
among all Vaisnavas and like Kaustubha among all jewels, Vaisakha
is the most excellent one among all the months conducive to piety
and virtuousness.
15-17. There is nothing else like this in the world which is
conducive to the pleasure of Visnu.
The Lord accompanied by LaksmT is much delighted with a
person habitually engaged in the holy bath before sunrise in the
month of Vai£akha (when the Sun is) in Aries.12
Just as creatures are pleased with food, so also Vi$nu is un
doubtedly pleased with the holy bath in the month of Vaisakha. On
CHAPTER TWO
i
The Benefit o f Different Kinds o f Charitable Gifts
Narada said:
1-5. There is no month equal to VaiSakha.1 There is no Yuga
equal to Krta; there is no holy text equal to the Veda; there is no
Tirtha equal to Gahga.
CHAPTER THREE
Narada said:1
1-6. If a person gives a cot to an excellent Brahmana where he
lies (can lie) down happily and comfortably enjoying the cool
breeze, that person attains freedom from all ailments in his body
that is a means to achieve Dharma.
By giving it he gets rid of all distress and becomes free from
sins. He attains the state of unbroken (bliss) which is very difficult
for even Yogins to attain.
After giving very excellent cot that dispels weariness, to the
Brahmanas tired and distressed due to the heat (of the sun) in the
month of VaiSakha, О lord of men, one never languishes in the
world on account of births, deaths, old age etc.
If a Brahmana accepts a cot and lies down on it all through his
life, all the sins (of the donor) whether committed knowingly or
unknowingly perish, О great king, like camphor in contact with
fire. That man certainly attains absorption in Brahman if the Brahmana
lies on it.
7 -10a. If a person gives food and clothing in the month of
Vaisakha (in) which Hari likes the holy bath, that person will be
endowed with all kinds of worldly pleasures in that very birth.
Along with his family he certainly remains unafflicted with ail
ments etc. He obtains longevity, very sound health, fame and
fortitude. Till a hundred generations are over, no unrighteous per
son is born in his family. He will die only after enjoying all
worldly pleasures. After getting rid of all sins, he attains salvation.
10b-13a. If a person gives to a prominent Brahmana well-versed
in the Vedas, a pillow without which no man can sleep happily
anywhere, he shall enjoy a kingdom on the earth after becoming
the supporter of all. Again and again he will enjoy all pleasures
and will be devoted to virtue. For seven births, О great king, he
will be all-conqueror. Thereafter, he becomes competent to go to
1. The last chapter discussed the meritorious nature of charitable gifts of food,
water, shelter and other amenities which relieve the oppressive heat of Vaittkha.
This chapter describes the importance of the gift of a cot. bedstead (vv I -13a), mats,
blankets (vv 13b-18) and other things helping to minimise the heat-effects of Vai£akha.
8 Skanda Purana
phor and agallochum, one is liberated from all bodily sins. There
is no doubt about it. The person who gives Tambula (collection of
all the above) certainly obtains fame, courage and glory.*
41-46. If a sick man gives it, he shall be free from illness. A
healthy man who gives it shall attain salvation.
He who gives buttermilk that is destructive of heat and distress
in the month of Vaisakha, becomes learned and wealthy on the
earth.
There is no other gift on a par with that of buttermilk in summer
season. Hence buttermilk should be given to a Brahmana weary on
the way.
He who gives buttermilk mixed with the excellent juice of
Jamblra (citron fruit) and fine salt which removes loss of appetite,
shall attain salvation.
О king, I am not capable of recounting the fruit enjoyed by that
person who gives curds in the month of Vaisakha for quelling
heat.
He who gives excellent rice (in the month of Vaisakha) that is
a favourite of Visnu, shall obtain full span of life. He shall obtain
the fruit of all Yajnas.
He who gives ghee from cow’s milk which is a form of Tejas
(fire element), to a Brahmana, obtains the fruit of a horse-sacrifice
and rejoices in the world of Visnu.
47. (He who gives) a mixture of tender cucumber and jaggery
in the month of Vaisakha when the Sun is in Aries, shall be rid of
all sins and certainly live in SvetadvTpa.
48. Infinite is the merit of that person who gives a Brahmana
a sugarcane stump in the evening or during the day, for the sake of
cessation (cooling) of heat and distress.
49. By giving Pdnaka (mixture of water and treacle) in the
evening in the month of Vaisakha for alleviating fatigue, one shall
be rid of all sins. He shall obtain Sayujya with Visnu.
50. One should give Panaka along with fruits in the evening in
the month of Mesa to a Brahmana. Thereby the Pitrs shall have a
drink of nectar undoubtedly.
51. If anyone gives Panaka mixed with fully ripe mango fruits
in the month of Vaisakha, all his sins shall certainly perish.
52. If anyone gives a (big) pot full of Panaka juice on the
new-moon day in the month of Caitra, undoubtedly a hundred
Gaya£raddhas have been performed by him.
II.vii.3.53— II.vii.4.8 11
CHAPTER FOUR
Narada said:
1-6. One who observes vows during the month of Vaisakha
shall avoid the (following) eight acts': smearing the body with oil,
sleeping during day-time, taking food in a bell-metal vessel, sleep
ing on a cot, taking bath in the house, eating forbidden food,
taking food twice a day and taking food at night.
He who observes the vows in the month of Vaisakha and takes
his meal on a lotus leaf, shall be rid of sins. He shall go to the
world of Visnu.
One shall wash the feet of Brahmanas who are tired at midday
in the month of Vaisakha. That shall be a holy rite, the most
excellent one among all holy rites.
If a Brahmana fatigued by travelling on foot comes to one’s
house at midday and if one makes that Brahmana occupy a beau
tiful seat and washes his feet and sprinkles*that water over his
(own) head, he shall have all the fetters (of Samsara) broken
down. He is certainly on a par with that person who has taken his
holy bath in Gahga and all other TTrthas.
7. A person who does not take bath in the month of Vaisakha,
one who passes the month of Vaisakha without taking food on
Palasa leaf, shall be reborn first as a donkey and thereafter as a
mule.12
8. If a healthy man of a strong constitution, devoid of ail
37-39. The devotee should offer Arghyas thus and then take the
holy bath. He then wears two clothes and performs all the rites. He
worships Madhusudana with flowers growing in the vernal season.
He shall then listen to the divine narratives and anecdotes of Visnu
praising this month. He shall be liberated from sins acquired in the
course of a crore of births and attain salvation.
40. He will never undergo distress on the earth, neither in
heaven nor in the nether worlds. He is not born anywhere again in
any womb. He does not suck the breasts further (i.e. is liberated).
41. One who takes food in a bell-metal vessel in the month of
1. For the story of MahTratha see PdP V (Patala Khanda), Ch. 99. The king
improved his conduct and performed Vai£akha-rites. After death he expressed his
desire to see hells. When he went to have a view, the hellish beings felt happy. Seeing
their plight, the king offered his merit of Vai£akha-rites and then the hellish beings
went to heaven and only after their redemption the king agreed to go to Vaikuntha.
II.vii.4.42— II.vii.5.4 15
Vaisakha, one who does not listen to good stories, one who does
not take holy bath or make charitable gifts, falls into hells.
42-47. Somehow the sin of killing a thousand Brahmanas can be
dispelled, but the sin of that person who has not taken holy bath in
the month of Vaisakha can never be dispelled. That base man is
undoubtedly dead though living, who does not take holy bath in
the month of Vaisakha, though he has his body under his control,
can freely enter and stay in water and his tongue is free enough to
utter the two syllables HA-Rl (but does not do so). If a stupid and
deluded soul does not worship Madhusudana in the month of Vaisakha,
by some means or the other, he shall be reborn as a pig. He who
worships Madhusudana in the month of Vaisakha with TulasT leaves,
shall become an emperor and enjoy pleasures in a crore of births.
Afterwards, he attains Sayujya with Visnu along with a crore of
the members of his family. The devotee shall serve Visnu both
Saguna and Nirguna (with or without attributes) by means of dif
ferent paths of devotion. He shall meditate upon him always with
the mind not dwelling on anything else.
CHAPTER FIVE
Ambarisa said:
1. Why should Vaisakha be considered to be superior to all
the other months and special holy rites, austerities, charitable gifts
and all the other types of pious observances (enjoined during its
course)?
Narada replied:
2-4. Let me tell you, О highly intelligent one. Listen with
single-minded attention.
At the end of the Kalpa, the great Lord, the Lord of Devas, lies
on his couch of £esa, the Serpent. With all the groups of worlds
inside his belly, he lies down in the vast sea of Pralaya. All the
16 Skanda Purana
CHAPTER SIX
Narada said:
1. О king, one who does not offer water in the month of
Vaisakha to those who are excessively thirsty and tired of journey
over a long way, shall be born as an animal (in lower species).
2. In this connection they cite the following old story and a
very wonderful dialogue between a Brahmana and д house-lizard.
3. Formerly in the family of Iksvaku, there was a king named
II. vii. 6.4-15 19
1. The story of King HemaAga illustrates how free offer of water in Vai£akha is
superior to all other gifts, YajAas etc. and refusal to do it leads to terrible punishment.
Neither PE nor Mbh record any such king. The names may be imaginary but they
emphasize the importance of gifts of water.
20 Skanda Purana
CHAPTER SEVEN
Narada said:
1. On seeing that miracle the king of Mithila was very much
surprised. With palms joined in reverence, the most excellent one
among those conversant with Dharma (Virtue), spoke these words
to (the sage) who was comfortably seated.
Maithilasaid:
2-3. This great miracle as well as the act of a saintly man has
been witnessed. I am eager to hear in detail about that Dharma
whereby this king, a scion of the family of Iksvaku, became a
liberated soul. О learned one, I am endowed with faith. Kindly
describe it in detail.
4. On
*
being specifically asked thus by the king the noble-
minded Srutadeva said, “Good! GoodIм and then addressed the
excellent king thus:
Srutadeva said:
5. О most excellent one among saintly kings, you are well-
resolved. You have decided well, since you are inclined to hear
about the holy rites well-liked by Vasudeva.
6. Without merit acquired in the course of many births no
embodied being can be interested to hear anecdotes of Vasudeva.
7. (Even though) you are a young man and a king of kings,
yet, your mind is inclined like this. Therefore, I consider you a
pure Bhagavata (a devotee of the Lord), the most excellent one
among good people.
8. So I shall recount to you the holy Bhagavata rites, О
gentle Sir. By knowing (correctly understanding) these splendid
rites a living being is liberated from the bondage of births and
worldly existence.
9-10. The excellent hoiy rites of VaiSakha are like various other
rites such as those of cleanliness, holy bath, Sandhya prayer, water
libations, §r£ddha, Agnihotra.
Without performing the holy rites in the month of Vai$akha in
24 Skanda Parana
vernal season one cannot rise up (to heaven etc.)- Among all holy
rites there is nothing on a par with Vaisakha.
11. There are many other rites. They are like subjects without
a king, who are assailed by calamities (i.e., these rites being easily
violable yield only adverse results). There is no doubt about it.
12-21. But those laid down for being performed in Vaisakha are
easy. They are:1 offering of water pot, construction of Prapas
(sheds for free distribution of water), construction of shady places
etc. (for travellers) on the way, gifts of footwear, umbrellas and
fans, gingelly seeds in honey, milk-products for the alleviation of
fatigue, erection of shelters for pedestrians, digging of wells, lakes,
tanks etc., gift of coconuts, sugarcane, camphor and musk, sweet
scents and unguents, gift of beds and cots, tasty mango fruit,
sharbat (sweet drink) made of lemon juice, gift of Damana (Arte
misia indica) flowers, gift of treacle juice in the evening, varieties
of cooked rice on the full-moon day and cooked rice mixed with
curds everyday, gift of betel leaves, gift of water pot on the new-
moon day of Caitra, early morning bath everyday before sunrise,
worship of Madhusudana etc., listening to the story of the Lord,
avoidance of oil bath, taking food on leaves, fanning off and on
those people who are weary, daily worship of Hari by means of
tender fragrant flowers, Naivedya, offerings of fruits and cooked
rice mixed with curds, offerings of incense and light everyday,
morsels of grass to cows, washing of the feet of Brahmanas, gift of
dried ginger mixed with jaggery, gift of powdered Emblic officinalis,
shelter to wayfarers and gift of rice and vegetables. These are the
holy rites praised and recommended for the month of Vaisakha
which is liked by Madhava.
22. Offering flowers to Visnu, worshipping Hari by means of
sprouts etc. peculair to the season, and offering cooked rice as
Naivedya is the cause of the destruction of all the masses of sins.
23. О noble-souled one, if a woman does not worship Madhava
either in a temple or in her house with the flowers growing in that
season, she will never obtain a son or happiness anywhere. She
will end the life of her husband or of herself.
24-26. In order to test the bridge of Dharma of the subjects in
the month of Vaisakha Visnu goes to their abodes accompanied by
Rama, Devas and the sages. If at that time any stupid fellow does
not worship him with flowers, he is a deluded soul. He falls into
the Raurava hell. Afterwards he is reborn in the wombs of demonesses
five times.
In this (month) cooked rice and drinking water should be given
always to those who are afflicted with hunger. It is the cause of
sustaining the vital airs.
By not giving drinking water he is reborn as a creature of lower
species. By not giving cooked rice he is reborn as an evil spirit. I
shall tell you a strange experience that I had in connection with
non-gifting of cooked rice or food.
27-28. My father was born as an evil spirit on the banks of
Reva.1 He ate his own flesh when he became utterly exhausted
with hunger and thirst. Due to lack of food he became too weak to
move about. He was staying at the root of a silk cotton tree devoid
of any shade. On account of excessive hunger and thirst and due to
his past Karma the opening of the food pipe in his throat was very
small. Pieces of flesh sticking to his throat gave him a lot of pain
threatening his very life.
29-32a. By chance, on my way to Ganga, I reached the bank of
that river. He looked upon the cool water of a well as well as of a
lake like Kaiakuta poison. At the root of the SalmalT tree I wit
nessed the surprising thing of his eating his own flesh cutting it bit
by bit and lamenting in diverse ways. He was afflicted with hun
ger, thirst and sickness on account of his own Karinas.
I pitied him but on seeing me, that spirit of sinful activities
rushed at me to kill. He was restrained on account of my splendour.
He began to run away. With my mind melting with pity I told him:
“Do not be afraid. I have given you freedom from fear. О dear
one, who are you? Tell me immediately the reason for this. I shall
set you free from this difficult situation. Do not be distressed.’'
32b-40. On being told thus, he said to me without knowing that
I was his son: “Formerly I was in the city named Bhuvara (‘most
excellent on the earth') in the land of Anarta (Northern Gujarat).
My name was Maitra. I belonged to the Sankrti Gotra. I regularly
performed penance, Yajnas. charitable gifts etc. and I was learned
too. All scriptures were learnt and taught by me. I took my holy
1. VV 27-44 describe the story how a Brahmana Srutadeva redeemed his own
father from the state of PiSaca.
26 Skanda Purana
baths in all the TTrthas. Out of greediness food was not given by
me in the month of Vaisakha; not even alms were given^at that
time. I now bemoan my lot after being born a Pisaca (Evil Spirit).
There is no other cause. Oh! I have told you the truth. Now my son
named Srutadeva is in my house. He is very famous. My plight
should be reported to that son of mine: ‘Your father has become a
Pisaca for not giving food in the month of Vaisakha. He was seen
on the banks of Narmada. He has not gone up (to heaven). He is
still at the root of the tree. He eats his own flesh and laments over
it. For the sake of liberating your father you must take early
morning bath in the month of Vaisakha. After worshipping Visnu
and offering water libations to me (your father) sincerely, cooked
food should be given to an excellent Brahmana possessing good
qualities. He shall then be liberated and go to the region of Visnu.’ ”
He further said, “Speak this to him; he shall have mercy on me.
There is no doubt about it. Let there be welfare in every respect.
Let there be auspiciousness in your case.”
On hearing the speech of my father, I became miserable. Exces
sively agitated, I prostrated before him at his feet for a long time.
With tears in my eyes and cursing myself I said: “O my father, I
am your son. I have come here by chance. Since my manes have
not been liberated from distress, I have fallen off from my duties.
I deserve the censure of Brahmanas. Tell me. What is that holy
rite whereby you will be liberated? О eminent Brahmana, I shall
perform it.”
41-42. Then he whose mind was completely satisfied told me:
“After performing your pilgrimage you should return home quickly.
At the advent of the month when the Sun is in Aries, you should
offer excellent cooked food as Naivedya to Visnu. О noble-souled
one, make some charitable gift to an excellent Brahmana. Thereby
the whole family shall attain salvation,”
On being commanded by my father, I completed my pilgrimage
and returned home. I made gift of food in the month of Vaisakha.
43-44. Hence my father was liberated. He came to me and
blessed me. Seated in an aerial chariot he went to the world of the
Lord of Sri—the world that cannot be easily seen and from which
those who have gone there once do not return.
Thus the charitable gift that has been enjoined in all the scrip
tures has been recounted to you. It is the essence of all Dharmas.
It is highly virtuous.
Il.vii.8.1-11 27
CHAPTER EIGHT
Maithila said:
1-5. О Brahmana, since he did not offer water, the descendant
of Iksvaku was reborn as a Cataka three times. Afterwards he
became a house-lizard in my abode.
Indeed this conforms to his Karma. He deserved it, since he did
not do his duty. It was said (by you) that he was born as a vulture
once and as a dog seven times. This appears to be improper to me.
Good people were not injured or censured by him nor were piti
ably helpless persons. Since he did not resort (to good people) he
may certainly not have had the benefit thereof. Indeed his act did
not amount to harassing others, because he had not caused harm to
them.
H o w then was he born in a lower womb without any (genuine)
cause? I am your disciple and a favourite as well. Dispel this
doubt of mine.
Srutadeva said:
7-11. О sinless king, 1 shall tell you what has been asked by
you. The same was recounted to ParvatT by Siva on the spotless
(pure) peak of Kailasa.
After creating all these worlds, he evolved two ways of suste
nance for them, viz. Aihiki (pertaining to this world), and Amusmiki
(pertaining to the other world).
Each of the two ways of sustenance has three factors. The
Aihiki (this-worldly) consists of service through water, service
through cooked food and service through medicine. Whatever these
are, О highly fortunate one, they are the causes of sustenance in
this world.
28 Skanda Purana
to keep up the house (my family life?). О gentle lady, you are
doing as I have done. Hence do not go to the sacrificial hall.
Certainly nothing auspicious will befall you.” Though urged thus,
the goddess did not give up hei fickleness.
39. SatT set out from the house alone on foot. On seeing her
the Bull silently bore the goddess on his back.
40. Crores of groups of goblins followed SatT then. After go
ing to the sacrificial chamber, she went at the outset to the apart
ments set apart for ladies.
41. (Everyone) kept quite on seeing SatT. With mental distress
she set out from there. Recalling her husband’s words, she went to
the northern Altar.
42. On seeing her, her father and those who had assembled
there stood silent without giving any blessing to her. She watched
her father’s performance of sacrifice till the time for Ahuti to
Rudra. When her father proceeded dropping Rudra, she said with
her eyes full of tears:
hair with his hand and dashed it against the floor. Therefrom arose
the exceedingly powerful VTrabhadra of huge body with a thou
sand arms. He assumed the refulgence of Kala, the annihilator (of
the universe).
52-55. With palms joined in reverence he spoke to Нага then:
“Employ me in the task for which I have been created.” On being
told thus, the infuriated Dhurjaci (Siva) spoke to VTrabhadra who
stood in front of him: “Do kill Daksa who has censured me and on
account of whom my beloved wife killed herself. Let the groups of
goblins and spirits of great strength go along with this (VTrabhadra).”
On being commanded thus by the Lord, they all went to the
sacrificial assembly. They struck all those great heroic Devas,
Asuras, human beings and others.
56. VTrabhadra who was born of the matted hair, broke the
teeth of Pusan who had laughed. He uprooted the moustache of the
vicious-minded Bhrgu.
57. The powerful VTrabhadra cut off the different limbs that
had been stroked before. He exerted himself much in order to
remove the head of Daksa.
58. As his head had been well-protected by the Mantras of the
sages, it could not be cut off with force. Knowing it Нага himself
came there and cut off the head of the wicked one.
59. After killing those who had come for the sacrifice, he
went to his own abode along with his followers. Some who sur
vived the slaughter, went and sought refuge in Brahma.
60-61. Accompanied by them Brahma went to Kailasa, the abode
of Siva. With diverse kinds of words he pacified Rudra. The great
Lord went along with him to the sacrificial chamber and resusci
tated all those who had come to the sacrifice.
62. Then Siva gave Khyati the goat-head of Daksa(?). The
goat-beard he gave to the noble-souled Bhrgu.
63. He did not give back the teeth to Pusan but made him able
to eat flour without teeth. Siva straightened some of his limbs that
had been distorted.
64-70. All of them attained welfare. The Yajna of the noble-
souled one was begun again as before by Brahma and Siva. At the
end of the Yajna, all the Devas went to their respective abodes.
Rudra adopted a very severe vow of celibacy and performed a
great penance. Rudra performed the great penance at the root of a
Punnaga tree (Calophyllum inophyllum) on the banks of Ganga.
32 Skanda Purana
the rite of serving good people which would have been conducive
to his own welfare.
Great misery was experienced by him and further he was born
in a lower stratum of beings. Hence one should render service to
good people, which accomplishes all purposes.
Since he did something displeasing to Rudra, Smara experi
enced misery very much in his next birth (though he was) a great
lord.
Those who listen day and night to this meritorious legend shall
undoubtedly be liberated from births, deaths, old age etc.
CHAPTER NINE
Maithila said:
l-2a. О holy Sir, how was Kama who had been burned born again?
What was the misery that he experienced as a result of his Karma, i.e.
offending Rudra. О Brahmana, recount this to me. I have great eagerness
to hear.
Srutadeva said:
2b-4.1 shall narrate to you the birth of Kumara, which, when listened
to, is destructive of sins. It is conducive to fame and virtue. It grants sons
and is destructive of all ailments.
When Kama was killed by Sambhu, his wife named Rati fainted on
seeing her husband reduced to ash in front of herself. Within a MuhQrta
she regained consciousness and lamented in various ways.
5-6. Due to her pitiable lamentation the forest too became equally
miserable. She desired to cast off her body in the funeral pyre (of her lord).
She remembered Madhava (Spring), her husband’s companion, in order
to get the necessary work carried out. That great lord came in order to
arrange for the funeral pyre on behalf of the wife of the hero.
7. On seeing his friend he became alarmed for a short while and was
* The birth of Karttikeya after the marriage of Siva and Parvati is a favourite
theme of all Purana-writers His birth is also the theme of Kalidasa’s epic called
Kumarasambhava.
II.vii.9.8-21 35
through the Vrata of the VaiSakha month you will certainly regain your
husband. There is no doubt about this.”
22-23. After granting her boons like these Devas went back in the
manner they had come. That gentle lady, the chaste wife of Kama, after
surmounting the difficulty took her holy plunge in Ganga when the Sun
was in Aries. The noble-minded lady performed the Vrata of Ashnyasayana
also.
24-27. By the power of that meritorious deed Kama was immediately
visualized by her, О great king. Kama whose power was irresistible in the
world was a king in the previous Kalpa. He was devoted to holy rites. But
he did not perform the great holy rites laid down for the month of
Vaisakha. Therefore, Smara met with the destruction of his body, though
he was the son of the Supreme Soul. If the month of Vaisakha when the
Sun is in Aries is spent in vain, such is the plight of Devas even; still more
so in the case of human beings.
Afterwards, when the Three-eyed Lord vanished, the Daughter of
Mountain became desperate.
28. On seeing her bewildered and sitting quiet, Mountain Himavan
became agitated, embraced her with his pair of arms and took her to his
abode.
29-31. Observing the handsome features, liberal-mindedness and
other qualities of the noble-souled Нага (the Daughter of Mountain)
decided: “ He alone shall be my husband.”1Her mind was fixed to him.
Observing holy rites, she came to the banks of Ganga in order to perform
penance, although she was prevented from it by her father, mother and
other kinsmen. The goddess observed fast and kept matted hair and began
to worship the great Linga. At the end of a thousand years according to
the divine reckoning Mahesvara appeared before her.
32-34. The Lord assumed the form of a religious student and came to
the entrance of the hut (one day) in the evening. By means of different
kinds of words (of discussions) he knew the steadfastness of the mind of
Parvati, which was fixed on him. The great Lord said, “ O gentle lady,
choose an excellent boon.” That lady of excellent countenance requested
Rudra, “ You be my husband.” After granting the same boon, he
remembered the Seven Sages. They came and stood before him with
palms joined in reverence.
1. The story of Parvati’s performance of penance for Siva, Siva’s interview with
her, proposal of marriage to Himalaya, the marriage-ceremony of Sfva-P3rvatT have
been favourite topics of Puranas and classical poets.
II.vii.9.35-52 37
35-39. The Lord directed the Sages to request Himalaya on his behalf
for the hand of his daughter. Commanded thus by the Lord they proceeded
towards the abode of Himavan for the sake of his daughter. They travelled
by air brightening the ten quarters and reached the abode of Himavan. The
Mountain welcomed all the Seven Sages, the most excellent ones among
the knowers of Brahman. He duly worshipped all of them. When they
were comfortably seated he addressed them: “I am blessed. (I feel) Ihave
fulfilled all my tasks since you people have come to my abode. I consider
your arrival as the beneficial fruit of my birth. Noble-souled men who
have realized all their objectives have not left anything for us to do. Still,
recount to me what is to be done by me now.” On being told thus they said
to Himavan, the great Mountain:
40-43. “O Lord of Mountains, certainly a statement befitting
yourself has been made by you. We shall mention the object of our
arrival for your own prosperity. Your daughter named ParvatT was
formerly the daughter of Daksa, Sat! (by name). After abandoning
her body in the Yajna, she is reborn as your daughter. In all the
three worlds none else but Sambhu is competent to marry her.
That goddess must be given (in marriage) to Sariibhu by you, if
you wish for infinite benefit. In the course of thousands of your
previous births good and meritorious deeds were performed by
you. Fortunately now they have fructified.”
44-47. On hearing their words the great Mountain became highly
delighted in his mind. He spoke these words again: “ Wearing bark
garments and observing fast my daughter is engaged in a very
severe penance on the banks of Ganga. She is desirous of getting
Sarnbhu as her husband. Hence this (proposal) will be liked by her.
My daughter has been (already) given to that noble-souled Three-
eyed Lord. О holy Sirs, kindly go quickly to the place where
Sambhu, the great Lord, is present. Report to him, ‘Accept (the
daughter) lovingly offered by Himavan*. Let yourselves alone
perform this marital rite.”
48-52. On being told thus by Himavan they took leave of him
and went to Siva. All the ladies including LaksmT and all the
Devas including Visnu, the six Mothers (viz. Brahml, KaumarT,
Vaisnavl, VarahT, IndranT, Camunda) went to witness the ceremony.
Accompanied by all the groups of immortal ones, the sages and
the Mothers and the groups of Pramathas, Siva set out seated on
his bull. There were various musical instruments such as BherTs,
Mrdangas, conchshells, trumpets, Pa(aha drums etc. Bards recited
38 Skanda Purana
poems. Sags chanted Vedic Mantras.* Thus Siva entered the city
of Himalaya. In an auspicious Muhiirta (auspicious hour) aryi in a
splendid Lagna the Mountain celebrated the marriage with ex
tremely delighted mind. О king, all the living beings in the three
worlds were overjoyed.
53. When the festivities were over, Sankara, the benefactor of
the worlds, sported with the goddess as he pleased. He followed
the ways of the world.
54-55. Sankara had his sports in many places, e.g. in the luxu
rious, well-furnished abode of Himalaya, comparable to the abode
of Devendra, on the banks of NandinT and in the clusters of woods
at night.
He sported in a park reverberating with the sounds of birds,
peacocks and inebriated bees. The Lord thus sported as he pleased
for a period of thousands of years according to divine reckoning.
56-59. At that time, О excellent king, women had not yet been
granted boons by Indra. Hence subsequent intercourse with men
caused miscarriage in women who had conceived earlier. Since
Нага sported everyday, the goddess did not conceive at all.1 Since
no son could be begot by the Lord, Devas became worried. All of
them joined together and consulted one another. “Нага, the Su
preme Lord, is always attached to the goddess like a lustful one.
Our task will not be fulfilled because of frequent miscarriage.
Something should be done by us to prevent subsequent intercourse.”
60. After discussing thus together, they began to seek (an
expert for their job). Having decided that Agni (Fire-god) was the
proper one, they spoke to him with due deference:
61-64. “ O Agni, you are the mouth of Devas, you are our
kinsman and resort. Now itself you go to that place where Нага
sports about. At the end of the intercourse show yourself up so
that there will be no further intercourse. On seeing you the god
dess will shy away and will certainly go away from that place.
At the end of the intercourse be his disciple and ask the De
stroyer of Smara about some point. Under the pretext of asking
questions about various things see that a great deal of time is
^Auspicious Mantras like svasti na indro etc. of Punyahavacana and others ex
pressive of blessings.
1. This is why Agni was deputed to disturb the sexual intercourse of Siva-
ParvatT. Unfortunately the plan flopped and Agni became pregnant. The story of
transfer of foetus seems an explanation of why Skanda had six heads ($adanana).
II.vii.9.65-80 39
taken, О lord. After the lapse of much time the goddess will
deliver Kumara.”
On being requested thus by Devas, Agni said “ Yes” and went
to Нага.
65-69. Even before the discharge of the semen virile in the
middle of the intercourse itself, Agni went there. On seeing him
the goddess who had no clothes on became ashamed and went
away dejected, leaving off the sexual dalliance in a hurry. There
upon Rudra became infuriated. He said to Agni, “Take this, О
sinful and vicious one, my discharged and unbearable semen vir
ile. There has been an interruption during the intercourse due to
your presence. Hence, О Havyavahana (‘Bearer of oblations’), I
am discharging the semen virile into your mouth.”
After saying this, Нага released the semen virile into the mouth
of Agni. Fire-god held that immensely powerful semen virile within
his belly. He began to be burned thereby. Worried with this thought,
he went to the abode of Devas. It was with very great difficulty
that he could save his own life. He recounted it to the Devas.
70-72. On hearing what was said by Agni, the Devas experi
enced both delight and dejection. They were delighted because the
semen virile had become established (into Fire-god). They were
dejected because they did not know how to effect the delivery (of
the child). The semen virile of Sambhu within the belly of Agni
grew up and ten months passed by. He did not know the means of
delivering the child. Hence he became excessively unhappy. He
sought refuge in the Devas for the release of the foetus.
73-75. Accompanied by Agni, those Devas went to the famous
Ganga. By means of eulogies and prayers they earnestly requested
Ganga : “You are the mother of all Devas. You alone are the
sovereign of all the worlds. On behalf of Devas, О gentle lady,
hold the semen virile of Sambhu. The foetus grows and develops.
But since Agni is not a woman, there has not been the delivery of
the child. Hence redeem him as well as all of us. Take pity (on
us).”
76. On being requested thus, the goddess spoke: “Let it be
so.”
The Devas imparted the Mantra for the release of the foetus.
77-80. Thanks (to the efficacy) of that Mantra, Fire-god left off
the refulgent semen virile of £ambhu into Gahga, the semen virile
that was highly unbearable to all the worlds. She held it for a few
40 Skandci Purana
months but could not continue beyond that on account of its great
power. Her waters became dried up and her body became red
dened. The goddess became exceedingly miserable. But thanks to
the power of chastity, (Ganga) the sole sanctifier of all the worlds
cast off the foetus within her into a cluster of Sara reeds. It was
highly blazing all round. It split into six due to the Sara reeds.
81-84. Urged by Brahma, the six Krttikas came there. They
unified the foetus of Sambhu that had been split into six among
the reeds. They made it one person with a single body but six
faces. The Krttikas who had been commanded by Brahma, did so
perfectly well.
That body in the form of a man with six faces remained among
the reeds unprotected for a long time.
Once ParvatT and ParameSvara who were desirous of going to
Srisaila riding on the Bull came to that spot.1
85-91. At that time milk began to ooze out suddenly from the
breasts of Goddess ParvatT. She became surprised and spoke to
Rudra, “Why did the milk issue forth from the breasts? Tell me the
cause thereof, О soul of the universe.”
On being asked thus Нага said: “Listen, О gentle lady, I shall
tell you. Your son is present below. I had not discharged my
semen virile into you. Before that Agni came there. On seeing him
you became ashamed and went away to another place. In great
fury the immensely powerful semen virile was discharged by me
into the mouth of Agni. With the favour of Devas Fire-god cast it
into Ganga. She herself became burned and so Ganga discharged it
among the reeds. There it split into six and was unified and stabi
lized by the Mothers. It took the shape of a man. It was on seeing
him that your breasts oozed out milk. He should be protected. He
has great vigour. In exploits he is on a par with Visnu. This alone
appears to be your bosom-born son certainly. Hence take him
quickly. You will become famous through him.”
92. On being commanded thus by Sambhu, she held that child
immediately on her lap. The goddess then fed the child at her
breasts.
93-94. Enchanted by the Lord, the goddess had tender emotion
for the son. Then the son of Sankara went to Kailasa along with
the Lord. The goddess attained great pleasure and satisfaction in
1. This explains the reunion of mother (ParvatT) and the child Sadananu.
II.vii.9.95— II.vii.10.4 41
CHAPTER TEN
Maithila said:
1-2. О Brahmana, describe in detail the procedure of Asunya-
sayanavrata that was advised by Devas and performed by the wife
of Kama. What is the charitable gift thereof? What is the proce
dure? How is the worship to be performed? What is the benefit
thereof? Describe this, О Brahmana. I am very eager to hear.
Srutadeva said:
3. Listen once again. I shall recount the Vrata that is named
Asunyasayana that is destructive of all sins and that was recounted
by Hari to Rama.12
4. If that Vrata is performed, the Lord of Devas having the
lustre of cloud, the Lord of the universe, the destroyer of all
Pancainrta, milk pudding and sweet pie cooked in ghee. The mate
rials are to be given in this order. Note (the procedure) for the (gift
of) idols. He should (in the beginning) give a golden idol of
LaksmI-Narayana. He should give a golden image of Krsna, the
Supreme Atman, in the middle. He should give a silver idol of the
noble-souled Varaha in the end.
20-21. He should then feed Brahmanas with the names begin
ning with Kesava. After honouring them with pairs of clothes and
ornaments in accordance with his financial position, he should
adore them and offer sweet pies cooked in ghee as presents. He
should offer these to twelve Brahmanas.
22-25a. Then he should give the image fashioned in advance to
the preceptor. The bed as planned before should be complete and
embellished with all ornaments. The great deity LaksmI-Narayana
should be duly worshipped on it. That should be given to an
excellent Brahmana,'a Vaisnava with a large family, along with a
bell-metal vessel and many sweet pies. The present should be
made along with garments and ornaments as well as monetary
gifts. He should duly worship other Brahmanas too and feed them.
31-33. On being told thus by him the saintly king requested the
sage once again: “ Describe in detail the greatness of the gift of
umbrellas in the month of VaiSakha. I am not satiated by listening
to the holy rites mentioned for the month of Vaisakha. They are
conducive to auspiciousness.”
On hearing* these words of his that bring about fame and in-
crease merit, Srutadeva of great fame replied to (the king) of great
fortune.
/■
Srutadeva said: 1
34-35. Infinite is the merit of those persons who offer protec
tion from sunshine to noble-souled men heated by the sun.
In this context they cite this traditional legend of yore pertain
ing to the holy rites of VaiSakha.This is the incident that happened
formerly in Krtayuga.
36. Formerly there was an intelligent king in Vangadesa, well-
known as Hemakanta. He was the son of Kusaketu. He was the
most excellent one among those who bore weapons. Once, as he
was much interested in hunting, he entered a deep forest.
37. There he killed different kinds of animals such as boars
etc. At the time of midday he became completely exhausted. He
went to hermitages of sages.
38. At that time the sages of good holy rites named Satarcins
were engaged in meditation. They were not at all aware of any
thing that was going on outside.
39. On seeing those Brahmanas motionless, the king became
furious and was inclined to kill them. At that time ten thousand
disciples restrained the king.
40. “O evil-minded one, listen to our words. Our preceptors
are engaged in meditation. They do not know anything that hap
pens outside. Hence it does not behove you to be angry.”
41. Thereupon, excited with fury he spoke these words to the
disciples: “ O Brahmanas, I am exhausted in my journey. Treat me
with hospitality.”
42-43. On being told thus by the king, the disciples said to the
king: “ We have not been directed by our preceptors, О king.
Further, we eat what we get by way of alms. We are dependent on
our preceptors. How are we competent to entertain you?” (Thus)
refused by the disciples, the king took up his bow in order to kill
them.
44-48. ‘These have been saved by me in various ways from
dangers due to animals, robbers etc. Now they who were given
monetary gifts by me, try to teach me. These are ungrateful and
excessively proud. They are (like) murderous assailants. Even if I
kill them, there is no harm.’
Infuriated thus, he began to discharge arrows from his bow.
When they fled, he chased them. Thus he killed three hundred
disciples.
In their fright, they left the hermitage and fled away quickly.
When the disciples were driven away, the evil-minded soldiers
seized the various articles stocked in the hermitage forcibly and
ate them up. In this they were encouraged by the king himself.
49-50. Thereafter the king returned to the city by the end of the
day accompanied by his army.
On hearing about the action of his son, KuSaketu reproached his
son very strongly. As he was devoid of patience and unsuitable to
the kingdom, the king banished him from the city as well as from
his land itself, О king.
51-55. Banished by his father, king Hemakanta became exces
sively bewildered. He entered the thick forest and was very much
afflicted by Hatyas ( ‘Sins of Slaughter’).
He stayed for a long time in the deep forest devoid of men. He
followed the practice of hunters and maintained himself. He could
not permanently stay anywhere because he was (hotly) pursued by
the Hatyas continuously. Thus the vicious one passed twenty-eight
years.
(Once) A great sage named Trita came to that forest in the
course of his pilgrimage. It was the month of Vaisakha and the
time was midday with the sun blazing furiously.
As he went along, he was oppressed by the sun’s heat and was
extremely afflicted with thirst. He fell into a swoon in a place
where there was no tree at all.
56. As good luck would have it, King Hemakanta saw the
great sage named Trita. Being overwhelmed with fatigue, he had
46 Skanda Purana
swooned. He was much distressed due to thirst. The base king took
pity on him.
57. He made an umbrella with leaves of Palana tree (Butea
frondosa) and warded off the sunshine by holding it above the
head of the sage. He gave him some water kept in a gourd.
58-63. By this service the sage regained his consciouness. He
held the umbrella made of leaves which was handed over to him
by that Ksatriya. Thereby he recovered from fatigue. He went to a
certain village and got back the regular functioning of the sense-
organs.
On account of the power of that meritorious deed the three
hundred Brahmahatyas perished instantaneously. He became a noble-
souled one.
Thereupon Hemakanta, the mighty warrior, became surprised.
T have been afflicted in various ways. Where have those Brahmahatyas
gone? How have they gone? Have they been dispelled by anyone?
What is the cause thereof?’
He was thinking in this manner about his relief from Brahmahatyas.
Even as the king stood thus ignorant of the cause thereof, the
messengers of Yama came there in order to take away this high-
souled Hemakanta who was staying in the forest. They made him
sick with dysentery in order to take away the life of this noble-
souled one.
64-72. Agitated due to the deathpangs, he saw three beings who
were terrible with hair on their heads standing up erect. They were
the messengers of Yama instilling fear in him.
Thinking about his (evil) deeds, the king remained silent then.
As a result of the charitable gift of an umbrella. О king, he was
reminded of Visnu.
Recollected by him, Mahavisnu said to his minister Visvaksena:
“ You go quickly and restrain the-messengers of Yama. Protect
Hemakanta who was engaged in the holy rite pertaining to VaiSakha.
Go to his city and hand over this devotee of mine free from sins to
his father. Enlighten Ku$aketu through these words uttered by me:
‘Whether one is devoid of all Dharmas, or bereft of celibacy etc.,
if he is engaged in VaiSakha Dharmas, he shall undoubtedly be my
favourite. Though your son has committed grave offences, he was
engaged in saving the sage. Since he has made a gift of an um
brella in the month of VaiSakha, he is rid of his sins. There is no
doubt about it. By the power of that meritorious deed he has
Il.vii. 10.73-84 47
CHAPTER ELEVEN
Maithila said:
1. The holy rites pertaining to VaiSakha are easily accomplishable.
They bring about abundance of merits. They directly cause delight
to Visnu and are the means of realizing the great aims of life.
2. Why are they not well-known in the world in spite of their
being eternal and laid down in the Srutis, though many Dharmas of
Rajasa and Tamasa nature are very well-known?
3-4. They (i.e. the latter) are very difficult to perform and they
involve a lot of effort. They require great expenditure. Some people
praise the month of Magha. Others praise the four months (of
rainy season). They extol in various ways the Dharmas of VyatTpata
etc. I am desirous of hearing about the distinction of these cases.
Explain it in detail to me.
Srutadeva said:
5. Listen, О king, I shall recount why these are not popular.
I shall explain how the other rites are well-known in the world.
6-8. There are many people in the world of Rajasa and Tamasa
types (nature). They are lustful. They wish for worldly pleasures,
sons, grandsons, riches etc. Somewhere and somehow you may
find with great difficulty some people who may endeavour for
heaven. Hence they perform good holy rites such as Yajna etc.
with great effort. No man seeks and strives for salvation (Moksa).
People with petty hopes and desires go in for desired benefits and
engage themselves in great many holy rites.
9. Therefore, the Dharmas of Rajasa and Tamasa types have
become popular and well-known and not these Dharmas of Sdttvika
nature, (though) they are pleasing to Hari.
10. These Dharmas of Niskama (desireless) type are (certainly)
the bestowers of worldly pleasures and heavenly benefits too. But
the foolish people deluded by the Maya of the Lord do not know
that.
11-12. When one attains lordship, one’s desires are entirely
realized. If one succumbs to temptations, one is deprived of the
lordship.
II.v ii.ll. 13-23 49
I shall tell the reason for keeping this a secret in the world
scrupulously, in regard to the Dharmas pertaining to Vai£akha.
They are of the Sattvika type and are intended for men of Sattvika
type here.
13-15. Formerly there was an emperor in Ka$T well-known as
KTrtiman. He was an ornament unto the family of Iksvaku. He was
an illustrious son of Nrga.1He had conquered anger as well as the
sense-organs. He was a patron of Brahmanas. He was the most
excellent one among all kings.
Once he was engaged in hunting and he came to the hermitage
of Vasistha. The month was VaiSakha, fierce on account of the
oppressive heat (of the sun). While proceeding ahead, he saw on
the way the disciples of that noble-souled sage constantly engaged
in various activities.
16-20. In some places they were setting up Prapas (free-water
stalls) and shady pavilions. Some were engaged in repairing tanks
by stopping the breaches in the embankments. In other places,
they were engaged in fanning some persons comfortably seated at
the foot of trees. Some were seen offering sugarcane stumps in
some places, sweet scents in some other places, and fruits in still
other places. At midday they made the gifts of umbrellas and of
Panaka (sweet drinks) in the evening. In some places they offered
betel-leaves and in some camphor ointments for the eyes. Some
were seen spreading smooth sands in shady places in the forest and
in the well-swept courtyards. О king, some were seen tying up
swings suspended from branches of trees. (When) he asked them,
“ Who are you?” , they replied, “ We are Vasisthas (i.e. disciples
of Vasistha).”
21-23. “ What is this?” ( “ What are you doing?” ), He asked.
They told the excellent king, “ These are the holy rites laid down
for the month of VaiSakha. They are the means of attaining the
aims of life. These rites are being performed by us scrupulously at
the bidding of Vasistha.”
The king then asked, “ What is the benefit that men attain by
performing these? Who is pleased (thereby)? Say this in detail in
the manner you have heard.”
1. Nfga was the younger brother of Ik$viku. He was famous for performance of
sacrifices and charity (Mbh, Van 88.5-6; Anuiasana 76.23). He was cursed to be a
chameleon and was redeemed by Кгзда (Mbh, Anuiasana 70. 2*28). But no son
called KfrtimSn i:» attributed to him in Mbh and BhP.
50 Skanda Purana
61-64. By taking the holy bath in Vai£akha even once one does
not go to the world of Yama. О king, at that time the son of the
Sun-god (i.e. Yama) had nothing to record. Then Citragupta got
complete rest from his writing and accounting (of Karmas etc.).
The previous records about the sins of people were erased quickly
in a moment by the people who went to the world of Visnu for
their own (good) Karmas.
All the Narakas (Hells) became empty as they were devoid of
sinful creatures. By the power of VaiSakha the path (to hell) be
came devoid of all traffic. All people became free from impurities
and of brilliant form and went to the region of Hari.
65-68. All the abodes of the heaven-dwellers became empty
similarly. When the heaven became empty, when all the Narakas
too became void, Narada went to Dharmaraja and spoke thus: “ O
king, no usual lamentation is heard in Naraka; nothing is being
written about the evil-doers. Citragupta is observing a vow of
silence like a sage. Tell me the reason, О king, why men of evil
actions, great imposters and tricksters do not come to your abode.”
69. When these words were spoken by the noble-souled Narada,
the king, the son of Vivasvan (i.e. Yama) said thus somewhat
helplessly:
70. “ O Narada, the king who is ruling the earth now, is a
great devotee of HrsTkeSa, the ancient excellent Purusa.
71-73. He enlightens the people in the holy rites of Vai£akha by
means of BherT sound: ‘He who is over eight years and under
eighty and who does not perform holy rites of VaiSakha will be
undoubtedly punished by me.’ Because they are so afraid, there
fore all the people never transgress. By means of that Karma, О
Narada, they go to the abode of Visnu. People will go to the abode
of Hari by resorting to holy rites of VaiSakha.
74-78. The path to my place has been destroyed by that king
now, О excellent sage. Ail the Narakas have been evacuated. So
also the worlds of heaven-dwellers. The accountant Citragupta has
taken rest. What has been already written has been now erased by
people. The greatness of the holy rites of the month of Vai£akha is
of such (efficacy), О sage. О Brahmana, people have been rid of
the sins like that of slaughter of Brahmanas. By performing their
duties in the month of Vaiiakha, they go to the great region of
Vi$qu. I have now become a mere log of wood (unable to punish
or bless people). I shall fight with him and kill him (though) he is
54 Skanda Purdna
very mighty in every respect. The (servant) who does not carry out
the tasks of his master, who remains inactive but who yet receives
his wages, certainly goes to Naraka.
79. If he is indestructible by a Deva, I will go to Brahma,
intimate to him everything and afterwards will be free from worry.”
80-86. After saying this he took leave of the Brahmana. Kala
lifted up his terrible staff, rode on his buffalo and went to the earth
along with his followers.1He was surrounded by his excessively
fierce attendants like Mrtyu, Roga, Jar a etc. and the messengers
numbering fifty crores. He immediately besieged the entire capital
of that saintly king. He then blew his exceedingly fierce conch
that instilled fear in all the worlds.
On hearing it, that saintly king knew that it was Yama, the son
of Vivasvan. He got ready with all preparations and angrily set out
from the city.
The fight between those two was terrifying and caused hair
stand on end. Within a trice that saintly king subdued Mrtyu, Kala,
Roga, Yama and Dutapati. He routed them in great anger. There
upon the infuriated king Yama himself approached him and fought
with him with many arrows. He roared like a lion. With three
arrows the king cut off his bow.
87-91. Taking up his sword and shield, Yama came down to kill
him. On seeing him, the king became furious. He cut off the sword
and the shield and planted in his forehead an arrow that had the
lustre of a black serpent. On being struck by it Yama became
furious and took up his staff. He charged it with the Mantra of a
Brahma missile and discharged it towards him (the king). The
onlookers shrieked “ Alas!” At that time, for the sake of the pro
tection of his own devotee, Visnu hurled his Discus. The Discus
hurled by Visnu came to the battleground, quickly clashed with
the staff of Yama and checked that Brahma missile. The devotee
of the Lord (i.e. the king) became frightened and immediately
eulogized the Discus.
92-94. “ O Thousand-spoked (Discus), the ornament of the hands
of Visnu, obeisance to you. Formerly you were held by Hari for
]. Conquest of the god of Death (Yama) and his torturous realms (Narakas) is
looked upon as the highest efficacy of a Vrata. It is attributed to Ek&dali in NP and
to Vailakha-Vratas here. It is a device of popularizing a Vrata, used here in vv 52 to
the end of the Chapter and Chapters 12 and 13 later. **
II. vii Л 1.95-110а 55
the sake of protecting all the worlds. I beg of you today to protect
Yama, the highly powerful devotee of Visnu. You alone are the
deity of death unto men who are inimical to Devas. No one else.
Hence, О lord of the universe, be merciful. Protect this Yama.”
95. The Discus that was eulogized by the king thus left Yama
and came near the king, О great king, even as the Devas stood
watching in the firmament.
96-100. Then Yama who was exceedingly dejected went to the
abode of God Brahma.1There he saw the Grandfather of all the
worlds seated, surrounded by embodied and unembodied beings.
He is the support of Dhruva, the seed (creator) of the universe. He
was attended upon by ail the Devas, the Guardians of the Worlds
and Lords of the Quarters, Itihasas, Puranas and other (sacred
texts) assuming the bodies of Devas, oceans, rivers and lakes in
embodied forms, all the trees such as A£vattha etc. having physi
cal bodies, tanks, wells and lakes as well as mountains with physi
cal forms, the units of time such as days, nights, fortnights, months,
years, Kalas, Kasthas, Nimesas, seasons, Ayanas (transits of the
Sun) and Yugas.
101-103. He was surrounded by Samkalpas (resolve), Vikalpas
(doubts), winkings and openings of the eyes, stars, Yogas, Karanas
(astrological positions), full moons, declinings and wanings of the
moon, happiness, misery, fears, profits, losses, victories, defeats,
Sattva, Rajas, and Tamas, Santa (calm), Mudha (deluded), Atipraudha
(mature), the effects of Prakrti, Vayu (Wind-god), the lord of
Devas, phlegm, bile and others.
104-110a. In the middle of all these, Yama entered like a
bashful bride. He was glancing at the floor and he exhibited a pale
face. On seeing Yama entering and standing nearby along with his
followers, all those beings became surprised. They said to one
another:
“ Why has Yama come here? Why has he come here to see Lord
Brahma, the creator of the worlds? This son of Ravi never remains
inactive even for a moment. Why has he come? Are the Heaven-
dwellers hale and happy? This is the greatest wonder that his
scroll is without any writing. The writer also has come with him.
CHAPTER TWELVE
Yama's Lamentation
Yama said:
I- 2 Listen to my words, О Grandfather (Brahma). I have been
ignored and deprived (of my job), I take the transgression of my
office as worse than death. If an employee does not do his duty, О
Lotus-seated One, and if he appropriates the money of his master,
he shall become a worm in a log of wood.
3. An intelligent man who, out of greed, misappropriates the
wealth (of the master), is reborn, О Lord of the earth, as a lower
animal and falls into hell (where he remains) for a period of three
hundred Kalpas.
4. If (the empioyee) is disinterested in his work and does not
carry it out properly, О Lotus-born One, he suffers (the tortures of)
terrible hells. The man is reborn then as a crow.
5. He who is devoted to his own selfish ends and spoils the
work of his master, is a sinning soul. He is reborn as a domestic
mouse and continues thus for three hundred Kalpas.
6. The employee who is capable of doing his work but (does
not do it) and stays behind in his house is reborn as a cat.
7. О Lord, I keep the subjects under discipline on the basis
of justice at your bidding—the meritorious through merit and the
sinful through sinful act.
8. The sages equipped with (the knowledge of) Dharma Sastras
(Ethical Texts) discussed and thought in detail at the beginning of
the Kalpa. They decided the tortures to be meted out by me (by
way of punishment).
9. I belong to you. Still I am not able to carry out your
behest. Your decree on the earth has been broken by King KTrtiman.
10. Iam afraid of him, О Lord of the universe. He is staying
somewhere ruling the oceangirt earth with the help of holy rites of
Vai£akha.
II- 13. People have abandoned all holy rites; they do not wor
ship the ancestors; they have discarded holy service to the sacred
fire; they do not perform such holy rites as pilgrimage to the
TIrthas; they have abandoned both the paths, i.e., that of Karma
and that of knowledge; they have ceased to practice control of the
58 Skanda Parana
CHAPTER THIRTEEN
Yama is Consoled
Brahma said:
1-2. What is the miracle seen by you? Why do you feel exces
sively sad? Distress caused to saintly people will cause trouble to
one till one’s death.
Merely by uttering (the name of Hari) the greatest region is
attained. Won’t the people then go to the world of Hari at the
bidding of the king?1
3. One obeisance offered to Govinda is on a par with the
valedictory bath after a hundred horse-sacrifices. A person who
performs a sacrifice undergoes rebirth, but obeisance offered to
Hari prevents further birth.
4. Of what avail is Kuruksetra and of what use is SarasvatT to
him, if the two syllables HA and RI are present at the tip of his
tongue?
5. A Brahmna might have had sexual intercourse with a Candala
woman, particularly when she is having her monthly course. Even
then, if he remembers Visnu at the time of death, he will attain his
(Visnu’s) region.
6. Since, remembering him is liked by Visnu, one attains
Sayujya with Visnu in spite of a mass of sins produced as a result
of eating forbidden food.
7. Such is the month named VaiSakha as Visnu is fond of it,
О Yama. Even by listening to the holy rites thereof one is liber
ated from all sins.
8. Then, does it need to be particularly mentioned that one
who is devoted to the performance of holy rites goes (to the world
of Visnu)? When one sings about (the greatness of Vai$akha rites),
Purusottama becomes pleased.
9. How then does a person who is devoted to the perfor
mance of holy rites not attain salvation? The Lord of the worlds,
Purusottama, is our progenitor.
10. This (king) performs these holy rites in the month of Vai£akha
I. In consoling Yama in vv 2-15, God Brahma extols the glory of Vi$nu, his
name Ha-Ri (v 4) and the efficacy of Vaiiakha-Vratas—the main objective of the
Purana-writer.
Il.vii.l 3.11-24 61
Brahma said:
2 lb-24. The king who is devoted to Visnu’s holy rites cannot be
restrained by you. If, out of anger, you wish to outwit him (wait),
we shall (first) approach Hari and intimate everything to him.
What he says thereafter, we shall carry out.
He alone is the maker of the world. He is the protector of
62 Skanda Purana
]. Popularization of devotion to Visnu is the aim of this author. This firm prom
ise of Visnu is meant to contribute to it.
II.vii.l3.37b-47 63
1. A notoriously vicious king of yore; born of Manu and Sunithi; cursed to death
by sages. The famous king Prthu, an incarnation of Visnu, was churned out of Vena’s
right hand (Mbh. Santi, Ch. 59; VP 1.13; also PE 844-45.) It is narrated as a
prophecy.
2. Son of Vena. The first emperor coronated by Devas. He established Law,
Order and Dharma and made arrangement for the livelihood of people of all castes
and communities as symbolized by his milking of the Earth-Cow (VaP 1. 126-74).
3. This has become an integral part of daily Vai&kha observances (see vv. 55-
58).
64 Skanda Purana
Maithila said:
67b-69. Indeed the vicious king Vena was present in the earlier
Manvantara. This king, the scion of the family of Iksvaku, is
present in this Vaivasvata Manvantara. This has been heard by me
before. It is being described by you now also. He (KTrtiman) has
gone to Vaikuntha; Vena will be the king afterwards. (How can
this be?) О £rutadeva of great intellect, clear this doubt.1
Srutadeva replied:
70-72. There is conflict in Puranas only because of this differ
ence in the arrangement of Yugas and Kalpas. You shall not have
any doubt about its authenticity, if the story happens to involve
(apparent) contradictions.
When the daily Kalpa has passed(?), this (story) is permanent
and splendid. It was narrated to me by Markandeya and that has
been recounted to you, О king.
Hence the Vaisakha rites should not become popular. Only one
(among many) will know it. He will be unattached (to the worldly
pleasures). He will be devoted to Visnu.
I. Puranas have conflicting versions of the same story and the usual explanation
is their occurrence in different Yugas and Kalpas (see vv 70-72).
66 SkandaPurana
CHAPTER FOURTEEN
Liberation o f a Pisaca
Srutadeva said:
1-6. He who takes the holy bath in the morning in the month of
Vai£akha when the Sun is in Aries, worships Madhusudana and listens
to this story of Hari, shall be rid of all sins and go to the highest region
of Visnu.1
He who leaves off (in the middle) when the story (of Visnu) is being
read and expounded and stupidly resorts to any other thing shall fall
into Raurava Naraka and then he is bom as a PiSaca (evil spirit). In
this context they cite this ancient traditional legend as an illustration.
This story is destructive of sins. It is holy and conducive to virtue. It
is an ancient tale which should be respected forthwith.
Formerly, on the banks of Godavari in the splendid holy place of
Brahme£vara there lived two holy spiritual preceptors, the disciples of
Durvasas, well-known in all the three worlds as Satyanistha, and
Taponistha.12 They were firmly devoted to Supreme Brahman. They
were always devoted to the Upanisadic teachings. They were indiffer
ent (to worldly pleasures). They were meritorious. They subsisted only
on what was received as alms. Both of them lived in a cave.
7-11. Of these two, Satyanistha was always devoted to the stories
of Visnu. Even if there were no listeners or expounders, the great sage
used to carry on (leisurely) his daily round of duties. If there was
even one listener, he used to expound to him (Visnu*s story) day and
night.
If anyone expounded the auspicious and meritorious story of Visnu,
he used to curtail his religious rites and listen to the story, because
he was interested in listening to the same.
He used to avoid going to pilgrim centres and sacred shrines situ
ated very far off, because they conflicted with his interest in the sto
ries (of Visnu). He avoided performing most of the rites. He used to
listen to the divine stories and to expound them to listeners himself.
О king, excepting the stories (of God), he did not know anything else
worthy of being resorted to.
12. If, being afflicted with sickness, an expounder (of Visnu-sto-
ries) happened to give discourse in his house (instead of in a public
place like a temple), the sage resorted to bath at a well and was
devoted to listen to the stories.
13-17. At the conclusion of the story, he used to perform his (reli
gious and other) duties duly.
One who habitually listens to the holy stories does not get involved
in bondage of births. He shall attain intrinsic purity. Absence of at
tachment to Visnu will disappear. Attachment to Visnu and friendship
with saintly people shall be engendered. The attributeless Brahman
free from Rajoguna will be retained in the heart immediately. Karma
is futile in the case of a man devoid of perfect knowledge. Even if it
is performed in diverse ways repeatedly, it will be like showing a
mirror to a blind man.
Karma repeatedly performed by those whose hearts are absorbed in
deep meditation shall definitely be conducive to the purity of nature.
Due to the purity of nature capacity to listen will improve. By listen
ing one attains perfect knowledge and then he becomes competent to
meditate.
18-23a. Sravana (listening), Dhyana (meditation) and Manana (re
flection) have been laid down in the Vedas in many places.
If there is no (narration of) tales of Visnu, if there are no good men,
that place should undoubtedly be abandoned even if it be the banks of
GaAga itself.
If in any land there is no TulasI plant, nor the auspicious abode of
Vispu, nor the (narration of) story of Visnu, a person who dies there
shall attain dense darkness (i.e. hell).
If in any village there is no abode (temple) of Visnu, nor a black
antelope, nor the story of Visnu, nor saintly people knowing it, one who
dies there shall immediately be reborn as a dog and continue thus for
a hundred births.
The sage (Satyanisfha) pored over the Upani$ad Texts and pondered
over the teachings therein and came to this decision. He was always
attached to the tales of Visnu; he was devoted to the memory of Visnu.
He did not consider anything superior to this listening.
68 SkandaPurana
Srutadeva said:
48b-50. Where there is the meritorious and splendid story of Visnu
that dispels the impurities of the world, all the holy spots and Tirthas
of diverse kinds are present there. Where the holy river of the meri
torious and splendid story of Visnu flows, salvation is within the reach
of the people staying in that land. There is no doubt about it.
70 SkandaPurana
CHAPTER FIFTEEN
Srutadeva said:
1-5. Listen further, О king, to the sin-destroying supreme efficacy
of the month of Vai£akha, a great favourite of Visnu.
Formerly in the land of Pancala, there was a king named PuruyaSas.'
He was son of Bhiiriya£as who was intelligent and righteous.
When his father passed away, О king, he was installed in the king
dom. He was eager to maintain Dharma. He was endowed with the
qualities of heroism and liberal-mindedness. He was an expert in the
science of archery. The highly intelligent king ruled the entire earth
through his pious and righteous activities.
Since he had not offered water (to the needy) in the previous birth,
he had incurred a great fault.12 О sinless one, after a lapse of some
time, he suffered a great loss of wealth. Horses and elephants met with
death after being afflicted with a fatal disease.
6. A great famine of unprecedented fury swept the land and the
entire realm was denuded of its population. The kingdom and treasury
became empty like a wood-apple (tree) eaten up by an elephant.
7-9. On coming to know that the king had become weak and bereft
of strong army, treasury and (stable) kingdom, hundreds of other kings, the
enemies of this king, thought that that was the proper time to defeat him.
They came in and conquered the overlord of Pancala land in battle.
Defeated by them, the king resorted to mountain caves along with
his wife $ikhinl and accompanied by nurses and other attendants.
10-14. Others could not know his whereabouts. He was agitated on
account of various kinds of miseries. Remaining concealed thus, he
spent fifty-three years.
The king pondered over the why and wherefore (of his condition) on
many occasions. (He thought thus:)
T am pure by birth and activity. I am engaged in the welfare of my
parents. I am a sincere devotee of my preceptors. I am endowed with
1. Though no such king is traced in Puranic dynasties that ruled Paficala, the
object of the author is to emphasize the efficacy of VaiSakha-Vrata. Pancala is
modem Rohilkhand (De 145).
2. Arrangement for distribution or supply of cool water in the hot month of
VaiSakha is a part of VaiSakha-Vrata. The king failed to make it in his previous
birth. Hence he met with calamities mentioned in vv 5-10.
n.vii. 15.15-25 71
1. The association of the Sahya mountain with Gaudade€a (vide vv 37-42 also)
can be explained if we accept a Southern Gautja on the bank of I£fiveri mentioned
in Padma Purdna (De 63).
Evii. 15.43-55 73
mate birth as a hunter, you engaged in your own job of ruthless (killing
of everyone) in the forest full of thorns. You stood on the path as the
merciless annihilator of all living beings.
At that time two rich and brilliant VaiSyas came that way. They
were afflicted with heat. A sage named Karsana who had mastered the
Vedas and the Vedahgas also had come. He had matted hair and was
clad in bark garments. The meritorious sage had the sole possession
of a waterpot. On seeing these, you took up your bow and stood there
obstructing their path. You rushed at the Vai£yas and pierced their
bodies with your arrows. You killed one of them and seized all his cash
and other possessions. When you attempted to kill the other one, he
hurriedly fled out of fear. He hid the cash and the valuable possessions
in a hedge. Utterly frightened, he tried to save his life.
43-5la. Afraid that he would be killed by the hunter, the sage Karsana
hurriedly ran in the hot sun. He was oppressed by heat and thirst. He
perspired profusely and then swooned. He was only very slightly con
scious. The Vai£ya, eager to save his life, left the sage and fled.
You pursued them. But on seeing the Brahmana unconscious on the
path you wanted to ask him, "Where are the valuable possessions kept
hidden? How far has the merchant gone?” In order to ask him about
this, you attempted to revive the Brahmana who was too much tired.
You blew into his ears and put powdered ginger to make him recollect
properly. You wiped his eyes with the water from the puddle full of
mud and worms. As he lay tired, you fanned his face with leaves. After
making the sage conscious, you felt mentally relieved and spoke to
him:
"Do not be afraid or suspicious of me in this forest, because I hold
weapons. One who is poor and without any possessions is happy in this
world. Wherefore need you be afraid so much? Nothing will I gain from
an old broken pot. О learned one, say only this much. Where has that
merchant fled? In which hedge is the valuable possession hidden by
him as he fled hurriedly. 1 will kill you if you tell a He.”
Karsana said:
5lb-55. The wealth is hidden in (this) hedge. He fled by this path.
So said he out of fear and desire to save his life, when he was so
questioned. (You told the Brahmana,) "Go happily along this path, О
Brahmana. You need not be afraid of me at all. A little farther from
here, there is excellent water in a lake. Drink that pure water and be
74 Skanda Purana
After saying this the Brahmana priests Yaja and Upayajaka took
leave of him and went away the way they came.
ILvii.l5.68b-85 75
a mad and inebriate man. All his limbs were marked with horripilation.
Tears welled up in his eyes. He prostrated on the ground. With palms
joined in reverence he eulogized with great devotion.
CHAPTER SIXTEEN
Srutadeva said:
1-3. With his mind flooded with the delight at his vision, the king
got up immediately and bowed down his head. With his excited eyes
he looked at the Supreme Lord of the worlds, the immanent soul of the
universe, for a long time. He washed his feet and held that water on
his head. Indeed the river that arises from his feet sanctifies the entire
universe including Brahma. He worshipped the Lord with plenty of
materials, very costly and invaluable garments, ornaments and unguents,
garlands, incense, lights and nectar-like foodstuffs etc. He dedicated
unto the Lord his entire person, limbs, wealth and his very soul. He
eulogized Visnu, the ancient Purusa, Narayana, devoid of Gunas, one
without a second:
4. “ I salute the unsullied overlord of the makers of the universe,1
the supreme one, saluted by the Lotus-born Lord and others. I salute
the overlord of the creators of the universe, whose Maya has deluded
excellent men conversant with reality.
5. Wonderful indeed is the activity of the Lord. Stupid ones be
come deluded in the Gunas activized by the Maya. The one and only
Lord devoid of desires and ambition creates by himself this (visible
universe) in diverse forms, protects it and consumes it. He is not
defiled thereby.
6-7. You are one who have completely realized your desires. Yet,
for the sake of the acquisition of happiness by Devas and misery by
all the Asuras (you do endeavour). In that connection, at the proper
time, you adopt Sattva Guna for the sake of protecting your own people;
for the sake of curbing the rogues and knaves you adopt Tamoguna and
for the sake of binding the Raksasas you adopt Rajoguna, О Cosmic-
formed One, devoid of Gunas. Fortunately, your foot is destructive of
the sins of those who bow down. When it is held in the heart by means
of well-practised and (highly advanced) mature Yogic exercises, it
becomes the abode of TTrthas.
8-10. Those who have matured well by means of devotion their
emotional existence as individual souls, have attained salvation merely
by remembering your feet.
But I am fettered by the noose of the deadly black serpent called
worldly existence accompanied by the repeatedly recurring births, old
age and other miseries. I wander from one species of beings to another
because I have forgotten your feet. My yearning (for worldly pleasures)
increases like that of a mouse on seeing the edible stuff (placed in
front of it for trapping it). Certainly no charitable gift has been given
by me; nor your story has been heard. No honourable men of good
disposition have ever been served by me. Therefore my vast fortune
and glory was destroyed by enemies and I entered the forest. Recol
lecting my enormous sins, I remembered my preceptors. When they
were remembered they approached me. They are the kinsmen of the
distressed ones. They addressed me (and consoled me).
11. They enlightened me in the splendid Vaigakha rites laid down
in the &rutis. They are the causes of attaining the aims of life such as
heavenly pleasures, salvation etc. Induced by them I have performed
all the holy rites pertaining to the month of Vai€akha conducive to
auspiciousness.
12-14. Hence, I have been enormously favoured. There have come
all these excellent riches. Neither fire, nor the sun, nor the moon and
the stars, nor the earth, nor water, nor ether, nor wind, neither speech
nor mind (are like you). On being served they remove sin after a long
time. Learned ones destroy (sins) when they are served only for a short
while. But you consider these learned men Bhavins (men engrossed in
worldly existence), though they have mostly eschewed their desires
and kept their minds fixed in your feet.
Obeisance to the independent one of wonderfully variegated activi
ties. Obeisance to the greatest one blessing the noble ones. Deluded
by your Maya, I have my vision riveted to meaningless objects. Hence
I wander among the Gunas in the form of wives and wealth.
15-19.1 do so in spite of the fact that your lotus-like feet are the
78 SkandaPurana
destroyer of the root cause, Avidya. You are the dispeller of all the
sins and are devoid of impurities. With a desire for happiness I am
possessed of ‘Му-ness* with respect to sons and wives who are but the
causes of calamities.
A person engrossed in worldly pursuits with increased thirst and
desire for the same, does not get peaceful sleep or welfare. Though I
have been bom a king, which is rare, though you are the cause of the
attainment of all aims of life involving effort, I do not worship your
lotus-like feet because my mind is deluded and I am covetous of worldly
pleasures. I perform my duties firmly and devotedly, but yearning for
pleasures does increase proportionately.
‘I shall become again (a more prosperous one); I shall today become
one’—such and hundreds of similar thoughts make my mind waver. At
that time, О Lord, let there be your mercy on the individual soul. О
Lord of cosmic form, your power is limitless.
By your mercy there shall be the association of great men whereby
the ocean of worldly existence becomes a small pit made by the hoofs
of cows. Once there is the association with good people, О Lord, the
mind is inclined towards you, the lord and master.
20. I consider, the removal of the entire kingdom (from my pos
session) has become a blessing to me, got easily from you because you
are being approached by Brahma, Suras and Asuras and hosts of honour
able and saintly men, when they cease to have thirst and yearning (for
worldly pleasures).
21. Hereafter, I shall remember only Acyuta with eagerness and
respect. О Lord, your lotus-like feet are destructive of worldly exist
ence. They are worthy of being prayed to by impoverished persons.
They bestow a great deal of fortune. I do not desire anything other than
your lotus-like feet.
22. Therefore I do not desire the kingdom, the treasury, sons etc.
(I have nothing to do) with the body that falls always (i.e. is transient)
and that is the result of Rajoguna. I continuously worship those lotus
like feet which are fit to be pondered upon and adored by sages.
23. О Lord of Devas, О abode of the universe, be pleased so that
I shall always remember your lotus-like feet. О my Lord, let my at
tachment for these groups cease, the groups symbolized by wives, sons
and wealth.
24-26. Let my mind be directed towards the lotus-like feet of Krsna;
my speech to the narration of your divine story; these eyes of mine in
viewing your form and image; the ears in listening to your stories; and
n.vii. 16.27-35 79
the tongue towards what has been offered to you (as Naivedya)\ my
nose towards the fragrance of your lotus-like feet; my hands shall be
engaged in applying the unguents etc. frequently on your devotees as
well as in sweeping and other activities in your temple permanently.
Let my feet be engaged in going to the holy spots of the Lord as well
as to the places where the story of the Lord (is being recited). Let my
head be engaged in saluting you constantly. Let my love be directed
towards your holy story. Let my intellect be turned towards constant
thought on you.
27. Let my days dawn with your stories being sung by sages who
come to my abode. Let there not be even a moment or half of it devoid
of episodes about you, О Visnu.
28. I do not crave or yearn for the position of Brahma or that of
an emperor. I do not wish for salvation too, О Visnu. I earnestly desire
for perpetual service of your feet, which is requested for even by Sri
and Suras including Brahma, Bhava etc.”
29. On being eulogized by the king thus, the delighted lotus-eyed
Visnu spoke to that king in a voice as majestic as the sound of a cloud.
Sn Bhagavan said:
30. I know that you are the most excellent one among my ser
vants. You are free from desires and sins. Still I shall grant you a boon
inaccessible even to Devas.
31. You will have a life of ten thousand years, О king, according
to the reckoning of Devas. You will have riches. Your devotion to me
shall be steady. In the end you will have Sayujya.
32. There is no doubt about this that I will grant worldly pleasures
and salvation to those who eulogize me with this prayer composed by
you. I shall be delighted with them.
33. This Trtlya (third lunar day) shall become well-known in the
world by the name Aksaya,1 being the day on which I am delighted
with you and have granted worldly pleasures and salvation.
34. Even ignorant men who perform such holy rites as ablution,
charitable gifts etc. naturally or under some pretext, attain my immu
table region.
35. If men perform &raddha rites with the manes in view on the
Aksayatrtlya day, that will be conducive to infinite benefit.
After having granted boons to him thus, Janardana, the Lord of Devas,
vanished there itself even as all were watching.
47-51. Thereupon, this excellent king became extremely surprised,
О king. Like one who has regained the wealth that was lost, he became
delighted and strong in the body. Everyday he was enlightened by great
men and his own preceptors.
He ruled the earth with his mind dwelling on him and with him as
his greatest resort. The king did not love anyone better than Vasudeva
by whose contact alone wives, ministers, sons and others became pleasing
to him. He performed all the holy rites laid down for the month of
Vaisakha again and again. As a result of the merit thereof, he was
surrounded by sons, grandsons and others. He enjoyed all his desires
ILvii. 16.52—ILvii. 17.8 81
CHAPTER SEVENTEEN
Srutaklrti said:
1. О bestower of honour, I am not fully satisfied on hearing about
all holy rites of Vai£akha that yield benefit both here and hereafter.
2 There is no satiety in listening to that sacred text that con
tains truthful instructions about Dharma and splendid and auspicious
stories of Visnu.
3. The meritorious deeds done (by me) in the previous births
have fortunately matured, because you have come to my abode in the
guise of a guest.
4. After having heard the exceedingly wonderful nectarine words
issuing from your lotus-like mouth, I am fully contented. I do not desire
the position of Brahma or even salvation.
5. Hence recount in their fullest detail those holy rites that be
stow worldly pleasures and liberation, rites thrt are exceedingly good
and cause delight to Visnu.
Srutadeva said:
7. Listen, О king, I shall narrate the story that is destructive of
sins. It has the Vai$akha rites for its theme, which have been discussed
frequently by sages.
8. On the banks of Pariipa there was a certain Brahmana of great
reputation named $aftkha. When Jupiter entered the Zodiac Leo, he
came to the auspicious rivet Godavari.1
1. Hindus believe that when Jupiter enters Zodiac Leo, GaAgS visits GodSvan
and pilgrims flock to Godivari to have a bath therein, as it is a bath in GaAgi
itself.
82 Skanda Parana
increase of merit. In this month these sandals that destroy the distress
resulting from heat (of the sun) have been given to me by you.
37-38a. Thereby your merit of the old times has become ripe. Gen
erally, О hunter, the delighted Lord will cause welfare. Otherwise how
can you have a splendid inclination of this type?"
38b-43a. Even as the sage was saying thus, a powerful lion urged
by god of Death furiously rushed at a tiger to kill it.1 But seeing an
elephant brought there by fate, he attempted to kill him. The lion
attacked him with his paw and stood ready (for fighting). О king, a
battle ensued between the lion and the elephant in the forest. Having
become tired, they stopped fighting and stood staring at each other.
Fortunately they heard what was said by the noble-souled sage to
the hunter. It was destructive of all sins. By listening to the greatness
of the month they became pure in heart. They were liberated from their
sins. Leaving off their bodies, they went to heaven immediately.
43b-47. They had assumed divine forms. They were smeared with
divine unguents. They were seated in a divine aerial chariot. They
were served by divine damsels. Suddenly they stood with palms joined
in reverence and head bowed down before the hunter. The great sage,
the expounder of the holy rites, was surprised on seeing them. He stood
motionless and said, “Who may you be? How did it happen that you
were bom in the lower species of animals? How did it happen that both
of you died together? With no apparent cause you were engaged in the
attempt to kill each other. Describe in detail all these things, О sinless
ones.”
On being requested thus by that sage they replied as follows:
48-53. “We are sons of Sage MataAga12 called Dantila and Kohala.
It was on account of a curse that Dantila and Kohala were reborn (as
lion etc.).
We were endowed with handsome features and prime of youth. We
were experts in all lores. Our father, the Brahmana-sage named MataAga,
an expert in the affairs of Dharma, the most excellent one among those
conversant with all holy rites, spoke to us: ‘O my sons, in the month
of Vai£akha which is a great favourite of Madhusudana, erect (free)
water-booths on the way, fan the people for a while, make shades on
the way, give abundant food and cool water, take holy bath in the
1. The following story illustrates the beneficial effect of hearing the descrip
tion of Vai&akha-dhartnas.
2. This Sage MataAga is different from that mentioned in VR, the guru of
Sabari or the ones mentioned in Mbh, Vana 84.101 or Anuidsaha, Ch. 27.
n.vii. 17.54-67 85
morning and worship the Lord. Listen to the story (of the Lord) too
regularly, whereby the bondage (of Samsara) will cease.'
Thus we were advised by means of various words of advice like
these. Still we were vicious. I, Dantila, became angry. This one named
Kohala became more furious than I and also haughty.
54-58. Our father who was very devoted to Dharma became angry
and cursed us.
He followed this dictum: One should abandon immediately the son
who is averse to righteousness, the wife who speaks displeasingly and
the king who is averse to Vedic learning and Brahmanas; otherwise he
will fall.1Out of courteousness or of covetousness for money, those
who associate with them fall into hell and remain there for a period
of fourteen Indras (a Manvantara). Therefore he cursed us who were
overwhelmed with haughtiness and anger.
He said: This Dantila who has become angry and is carried away
by fury shall be born as a lion. The haughty Kohala shall be a big
elephant in rut.' We repented afterwards and requested for liberation.
On being entreated by us, our father granted us redemption from the
curse.
59-65. ‘You will be bom in the lower species. After a lapse of some
time you will meet together and want to kill each other. At that very
time conversation between a hunter and (sage) £ahkha will reach your
ears. Within a moment you will be liberated. After your redemption,
after having assumed your previous forms, О my sons, come back to
me and stay with me. My words will not be otherwise.'
Thus we, those two wicked ones, were cursed by our father. We
were reborn as lower animals, met together fortunately, became desir
ous of slaying each other and heard your conversation that was excel
lent and auspicious. Thereby we were immediately liberated."
Thus they recounted everything, bowed down to the great sage and
took leave of him. On being permitted by him, they went to their fa
ther. Pointing this out, the sage, the storehouse of mercy, said to the
hunter:
66. “See the great benefit of listening to the greatness of Vaigakha.
By listening to it for a short while, liberation came within their reach."
67. While the sage was speaking thus, the hunter laid down his
arms before the sage who was a storehouse of mercy, of excellent
intellect, devoid of desires, of very pure nature and the sole receptacle
of merit.
CHAPTER EIGHTEEN
desire to hear (serve), have bowed down to you and have become pure
due to the contact with you.
11. On hearing these words of the hunter, the sage became sur
prised in his mind once again. After exclaiming “Excellent ! Excel
lent !” he spoke of these holy rites.
Sahkha said:
12. If you wish for welfare, О hunter, perform these holy rites in
the month of Vai€akha. They are excellent and cause delight to Visnu.
They liberate the devotees from the ocean of worldly existence.
13-15a. A fierce heat oppresses us here. There is neither shade nor
water here. So we shall go to some other place where there is plenty
of shade. After drinking water I shall resort to the shade. There I shall
describe unto you the greatness (of the holy rites) destructive of sins.
I shall recount the greatness of the month of Vai£akha that pertains to
Visnu. I shall recount it in the manner as has been heard and seen (by
me).
15b-17. On being told thus by the sage, the hunter said with palms
joined in reverence: “A little away from here, there is water in an
excellent lake. There are wood-apple trees there fully laden with fruit.
We shall go there. There is no doubt about this that you will be sat
isfied.”
On being directed thus by the hunter, the sage went along with him.
18-24a. After going a little distance from there he saw the excellent
lake. It was full of cranes and Karandava ducks. It was rendered beau
tiful by ruddy geese. There were swans, Sarasa ducks, storks etc. all
round rendering it very splendid. Bamboo-reeds with holes therein produced
a loud and sweet musical note along with the humming of bees.
It was very charming with tortoises, crocodiles, fish etc. swimming
about. It was a large lake abounding in lilies, blue lotuses, red lotuses,
white lotuses etc.
There were hundred-petalled lotuses of the Kokanada variety all
round, beautifying the lake splendidly. The sweet chirping sounds of
the birds reverberated. The lake was one that afforded the pleasure of
a festival unto the eyes.
There were hedges of bamboo reeds and many trees adorning the
banks. It was rendered beautiful by various trees such as banyan trees,
Karanja, NTpa, tamarind, margosa, Plaksa, Priyala, Campaka, Bakula,
88 SkandaPurana
On being requested thus, the great sage named £ahkha spoke once
again in a majestic tone like that of a cloud. There was smile on his
lotus-like face.
n.vii. 18.37-55 89
Sahkha said:
37-41. Formerly you were a Brahmana named Staihba in the city of
$akala (modern Sialkote, Panjab). You had mastered the Vedas and
were very brilliant. You were born of Srivatsa Gotra. You had a pros
titute as your beloved. On account of the fault of associating with herf
you had forsaken your daily rites. You returned home like a £udra. You
were devoid of good conduct. You were vicious with all holy rites cast
off.
You had a Brahmana wife named KantimatT. That beautiful lady
served you along with that prostitute (though) you were a base Brahmana.
In order to please you, she washed the feet of both of you. She obeyed
the words of both of you. She slept below on the ground allowing both
of you to sleep (on the cot).
42-48a. Though she was prevented by that prostitute (your Brahmana
wife) adhered to her chaste activities. Serving her husband and the
prostitute together, she continued to be miserable on the earth. A great
deal of time elapsed thus.
One day the husband consumed the Masa pulse along with radish.
Following the custom of $udras, he ate the Nispava pulse mixed with
gingelly seeds. Having consumed those unwholesome things, he suf
fered from vomiting and diarrhoea.
On account of the unwholesomeness of the food, he became a prey
to the dreadful disease of fistula of anus. On account of that ailment
it appeared as though he was being burned day and night.
As long as there was ample wealth in the house, the prostitute con
tinued to stay there, but having deprived him of his wealth, she no
longer stayed in his abode. The terrible, merciless courtesan went away
and stayed with someone else. Afflicted very much with the ailment,
with his mind agitated on account of the pain, he spoke to his wife
cryingly in a pitiable tone:
48b-51. “Protect me, О gentle lady, ruthless though I was due to my
attachment to a prostitute. О holy and beautiful lady, I have not at all
helped you so far. О gentle lady, that despicable sinner who does not
honour his wife who bows down to him, shall become a eunuch in the
course of fifteen births. О highly fortunate lady, day and night I am
censured by honourable and virtuous men. Since I have disrespected a
chaste lady like you, I will be reborn of a sinful womb. I bum within
myself with the anger arising from the dishonour done to you.”
52-55. When her husband said thus, she spoke these words with palms
joined in reverence:
90 SkandaPuram
1. The self-immolation of the widow along with the dead body of the husband
described here, is called Satl. This was a respectable practice in higher castes
as recorded in various mediaeval inscriptions. Curiously enough the practice has
no Vedic sanction. The two Mantras, RV X. 18.8 and AV XVI1I.3.1, mention some
pre-Vedic custom when the widow, as a formality, used to lie by the side of the
deceased husband on the funeral pyre and return to "life". The first ‘historical’
reference to Satl, viz. queen Madri's self-immolation with king Pandu in Mbh.
Adi 116.31 is nullified by Mbh, Adi 118.21-22 which states that the dead bodies
of Pandu and Madri were brought to Hastinapura and were given a royal funeral
on the same pyre. How Madri died is a matter of anybody’s conjecture. Her
inability to fulfil Pandu’s last desire for sexual intercourse must have broken the
heart of the pious lady. Old Grhya Sutras, and old Smrtis like Manu and Yajnavalkya
do not support Satl. In the dark middle age of India (to which SkP belongs) the
so-called Dharma£astra writers even distorted older texts to support widow-burn
ing. Thus Kamalakara Bhatta in Nirnaya Sindhu quotes an imaginary Manu’s
authority to advocate widow-burning as an alternative to life-long celibacy of a
widow as follows:
brahmacaryam cared vd 'pi, provided vd hutdfanam /
On the contrary Medhatithi (9th cent. CE), the famous commentator of Manusmfti,
on Manu V.I56 plainly states that ‘Dying after the husband is against the Vedas'
{Sruti-virodho ’yam).
92 SkandaPurana
77-78. Permission was given by you for the gift of the sweet drink
in the month of Vai£akha, О (hunter) with a chaste wife. Hence when
you were bom as a hunter, you had the good inclination of asking about
holy rites that cause all happiness. You got your head sprinkled with
the water with which the feet of the sage were washed. It was con
ducive to the destruction of all sins. Therefore, you had the opportunity
of contacting me in this forest now, and due to this you will have
further riches etc.
79. Thus whatever was done by you in the previous birth has been
recounted to you. Your meritorious and sinful Karmas have been seen
by me through divine vision.
80. Whatever you wish to hear, I shall recount unto you even if
it be a secret. Your mind has become purified, О highly intelligent one.
Hail unto you!
CHAPTER NINETEEN
Sankha said:
5. Listen, О hunter, I shall describe the form of Visnu. It is
spotless (devoid of sins). It cannot be (adequately) comprehended by
Brahma and others and by sages of pure, sanctified souls.
6. The Lord of all has been described as one with full powers and
one full of good qualities. The Lord whose form consists qf existence.
n.vii.19.7-18 93
know that it is endowed with knowledge etc. One shall know that
human beings and Gandharvas are hundred times superior to BJiuta.
19. One should know the Devas who identify themselves with the
Tattvas as superior to them. The Seven Sages are more excellent than
the Devas who identify themselves with the Tattvas.
20. Agni is more excellent than the Seven Sages. The Sun and
others are superior to Agni. Guru is superior to the Sun. Prana (Vital
Air) is superior to Guru. Indra of great strength is superior to Prana.
21. Goddess Girija is superior to Indra. $ambhu, the sire of the
universe, is superior to the Goddess. Buddhi (Cosmic Intellect), the
great goddess, is superior to (individual?) Buddhi and Prana is superior
in strength to Buddhi.
22. There is nothing greater than Prana. Everything is established
in Prana. This universe is evolved out of Prana. This universe has Prana
for its soul.
23. All this (visible world) is as if sewed to Prana. It is active
only through Prana. They say that it is the support of everything and
has the lustre of the blue cloud. It is the Sutra (that which makes
everything function).
24. This Prana is sustained merely by the side-glance of LaksmI.
That LaksmI gets a portion of the mercy of the Lord of Devas.
25-26. There is nothing greater than Visnu nor even on a par with
him in any respect.
Sahkha said:
27. Listen, О hunter. I shall recount to you what you have asked
about the decision in regard to the superiority of Prana in all the JTvas
(Individual Souls).
28. Formerly in the Padmakalpa, Narayana, the eternal Lord,
Janardana, created Devas beginning with Brahma and said thus:
29-32. “O prominent Devas, I shall instal god Brahma as your pro
tector and master of this empire (universe). You appoint that Deva as
a crown-prince who is superior to you, who is richly endowed with
II.vii.l9.33-44b 95
Sankha said:
72. Formerly Prana was desirous of performing horse-sacrifices in
CHAPTER TWENTY
Sahkha said:
3-6. Indeed the groups of JTvas are of three types with Rajas, Sattva
and Tamas as their Gunas.1Those of Rajas perform Rajasa activities.
Those of Tamas pursue Tamasa activities and those of Sattva pursue
Sattvika activities.
Sometimes there occurs difference in Gunas during their transmi
gration (from one birth to another). For this reason they do acts of
higher and lower kinds and experience the fruits thereof.
In some cases they obtain happiness, in some instances they expe
rience miseries and in some cases they get both (happiness and mis
eries). These they attain on account of difference in their (share of)
Gunas. Being bound by the three Gunas, these JTvas abide in Prakrti.
7. The diversity in regard to the fruits of actions occurs in ac
cordance with Gunas and Karmas. Again these individuals (i.e. indi
vidual souls) attain Prakrti and conformity to the Gunas.
8. (Obscure) Those who abide in Prakrti and those who follow it
are excited (<abhimurchitahl) by Prakrti and they attain Prakrti as their
goal. There is no question of opposition to Prakrti.
9. The Tamasas (those with dominant Tamoguna) mostly expe
rience pain and misery. They have always Tamasa pursuits and activi
ties. They are merciless and.cruel. They live in the world activated
by hatred alone.
10-11. Beings beginning with Raksasas and ending with Pi€acas at
tain the Tamasa goal. Those with dominance of Rajas quality are of
mixed temperament. They commit sins as well as meritorious deeds.
They attain heaven as a result of meritorious deeds. They undergo
sufferings in certain places due to sins. Hence these unfortunate ones
repeatedly come and go (in this world).
12. Persons habituated to perform pious deeds, the merciful ones,
those who are faithful and those who are devoid of jealousy are the
Sattvikas. They continue to follow the activities of Sattva type (of
good nature).
13. Persons of great prowess and devoid of impurities, go upwards
when the Gunas are dispelled.
Sahkha said:
20. A thousand sets of four Yugas make what is called a day of
Brahma. He has a night also of the same duration. The day and night
together make one full day.
21. Fifteen such full days make a Paksa (fortnight). A month con
sists of two such Paksas. They call two months together as one Rtu
(Season) and three such Rtus make one Ayana.
22. Two Ayanas make one Vatsara (year). If hundred such years
pass by, it is known as one Kalpa of Brahma.
23-24. According to the opinion of those conversant with the Vedas
the duration of Pralaya is that much (like that of a Brahma Kalpa).
Pralaya (Annihilation) is of three types:1(1) Manava when a Manu’s
1. VV 24-38 describe the three types of Pralaya. It should be noted that Daily
(Dainandina) Pralaya occurs at the end of Brahmi’s day and not of ours as is
believed by some.
II.vii.20.25-39a 101
What are those whereby Visnu becomes pleased? 1 wish to hear about
them now. О sage, describe them to me.
Sahkha said:
53b-55. Know that to be a Sattvika Dharma1whereby there shall be
purity of mind, which shall be helpful to good people and which is not
at all censured by anyone.
They know that Dharma to be Sattvika, the Dharma which is laid
down in Srutis and Smrtis, provided it is not attended with ardent
desires (for worldly pleasures) and is not antagonistic to worldly pur
suits.
Those Dharmas are of four types according to the castes and the
stages of life.
56-59. They are classified into three other groups, viz. Nityas (daily
duties such as Sandhya prayers etc.), Naimittikas (occasioned by as
tronomical positions and other causes) and Kamyas (performed for the
attainment of specific ends).
All those different duties (of the different castes) should be known
as Sattvika Dharmas when they are dedicated to Visnu. They are the
auspicious Bhagavata Dharmas.
The holy rites with bther presiding deities are considered to be
Rajasas (of the Rajasa type).
The wicked and atrocious rites with Yaksas, Raksasas, PiSacas etc.
as the presiding deities, which are censured (by good people) and which
involve violence and injury (to others) are known as Tamasas (having
Tamoguna as the basis).
Those are known as Bhagavatas who strictly adhere to Sattva Guna
and perform the auspicious Sattvika Dharmas that cause delight unto
Visnu and who perform them regularly without any specific desire.
60. Those are indeed Bhagavatas whose mind is always attached
to Visnu, in whose tongue the name of the.Lord is present and in whose
heart the feet of the Lord are enshrined.
61. Those who are engaged in good conduct, those who render
help to all and those who are always free from Mamata (sense of “my-
ness”, self-interest) are known as Bhagavatas.
62. Those who have full faith in the scriptural texts, their precep
1. VV 53-92 define and describe Sattvika Dharmas, who are Bhagavatas and
allied topics. The Vailakha Dharmas included here loo, are stated in a nutshell
(vv 71-92).
№ ShcmdaPurana
tor, pious and honourable men and good activities, and those who are
always devoted to Visnu are known as Bhagavatas.
63. The Dharmas esteemed by Bhagavatas, those that are ever
dear to Visnu, and which are laid down in Srutis and Smrtis are con
sidered eternal.
64-68. In regard to those people whose mind is attracted by sensual
pleasures, wandering over all the lands, seeing (performance) of all
holy rites and listening to all Dharmas does not serve any purpose like
an excellent young women in regard to a eunuch.
Merely by looking at pious and honourable men the mind of good
people begins to melt like a slab of the moon-stone (Candrakantasila)
that comes into contact with the rays of the Moon.
In some places, by listening to excellent scriptural texts, the mind
of good men being unaffected by sensual pleasures remains pure and
refulgent like a sun-stone (Suryakantasila) due to contact with the rays
of the Sun.
A Dharma always liked by Visnu and faithfully resorted to by the
people devoid of desires is considered to be a Bhagavata Dharma.
69. Many holy rites observed by them yield benefit here and here
after. They give delight to Visnu. They are subtle and conducive to
liberation from all miseries.
70. Just as one takes out the essence, butter, from curds, so also
the Lord, residing in the Milk Ocean, has taken out the Dharma per
taining to Vaigakha and recounted it to Rama with a desire for the
welfare of all.
71-75. The following are the holy rites destructive of sins: Making
cool shady places along the roads, endowing frec-water booths for dis
tributing drinking water, fanning with hand fans, offering of utensils
and furniture, gift of umbrella and shoes, gift of camphor and sweet
scents, digging of tanks, wells and lakes if one has the money and other
facilities, gift of sweet drinks in the evening, gift of flowers, gift of
betel leaves and that of milk products are particularly destructive of
sins. Gift of butter-milk with a pinch of salt to one who is weary on
the way, applying oil to the body, washing of the feet of Brahmanas,
gift of mats, blankets and cots, gift of cows and of gingelly seeds
mixed with honey are destructive of sins.
76-78. Giving sugarcane stumps in the evening, gift of sweet con
coction from cucumber and medicine and offerings to manes: these are
the’holy activities particularly mentioned for this month which is a
favourite month of Madhava.
II.vii.20.79-95 105
A devotee should take his holy bath early in the morning at sunrise.
He should listen to the chanting (of the Vedic Mantras) done by Brahmanas.
He should then perform his daily round of duties and then worship
Madhusudana. With great concentration he should listen to the story
pertaining to the month of Vai£akha.
79-85. The devotee should avoid applying oil to the body; he should
not take meal in a bell-metal vessel; he should not take forbidden food.
He should not indulge in idle talk and gossip. He should abstain from
eating bottle-gourd, garlic, carrot, gingelly seed-cake or eatables pre
pared from gingelly powder, gruel made by fermentation of boiled rice,
burnt rice, Ghrtako£atakT, UpodakI, Kalinga, Si£u6aka, pterygosperma,
potherb, Dolichos lablab, horsegram, Masura pulse, eggplants, Wrightia
antidysenteria, the grain eaten by poor people viz. Paspalum scrobiculatum,
Amaranthus polygonoides, safflower prepared as potherb, radish, Ficus
religiosa, Aegle marmelos, and Cordia latifolia. A wise devotee should
avoid all these in this month much liked by Madhava.
By eating any of these he shall definitely be reborn as a Candala
and then in hundreds of animal wombs (species). There is no doubt
about it. Thus the devotee should perform the Vrata for the whole
month for propitiating the Slayer of Madhu. When the Vrata is con
cluded, the devotee should make an image of the Lord.
86. The image of Lord Madhusudana should be given to a Brahmana
along with clothes, monetary gifts etc. after duly being worshipped
with all necessary offerings.
87-88a. On the twelfth day in the bright half of Vaisakha the devo
tee should eagerly give curd-ricc (boiled rice mixed with curds) along
with a pot full of water, fruits, betel leaves and monetary gifts (saying)
“I give this unto Dharmaraja. May Yama be pleased with it.”
88b-91. It should be given with the sacred thread worn over the
right shoulder after uttering the name and Gotra of the fathers and
manes. Thus the devotee should give rice mixed with curds for the sake
of the pleasure of the manes. Similarly he should give to the preceptors
too and afterwards to Visnu.
“I give unto you, О Visnu, excellent cool water and rice mixed
with curds. It is kept in a bell-metal vessel. It is offered along with
betel leaves and monetary gifts, edible foodstuffs and fruits. I wish to
go unto the world of Visnu.’*
After offering this he should give a cow in accordance with his
capacity, to a person having a large family.
92-95. If a person performs this monthly Vrata with sincerity, he
106 SkandaPurana
CHAPTER TWENTYONE
Birth of Valmlki
*
Srutadeva said:
1-3. Along with the hunter Sankha became surprised. He asked
him, “Who may you be? Whence have you been in this plight? О
gentle Sir, what is that holy rite whereby your mind has become aus
piciously inclined? How did you get liberated so suddenly? Tell this
in detail.”
On being asked thus by £ankha, he fell on the ground like a staff;
with palms joined in reverence and bowing down his head with humil
ity, he spoke these words:
4-6. (The redeemed serpent said1:) “Formerly I was a very talk
ative Brahmana in Prayaga. I was endowed with handsome features and
prime of youth. I was very proud on account of my learning. I had
abundant wealth and many sons. I had the defect of always behaving
arrogantly. I was the son of Sage Kuslda, Rocana by name. These were
my activities: Sitting quietly, lying down, sleeping, having sexual inter
course, gambling, gossiping and usury.
7. Being apprehensive of public censure, I used to perform hypo
critically even the subtlest of traditional (religious) rites. But I never
had any faith in them.
8-12. I, who was thus wicked and of perverted mind, passed a great
deal of time. Once in the month of VaiSakha, a Brahmana named Jayanta,
expounded the holy rites enjoined for that month dear to the Lord.
Men and women among the meritorious Brahmanas residing in that
holy place, Ksatriyas, VaiSyas and thousands of Sudras took bath early
in the morning and worshipped the immutable Lord Madhusiidana.
Thereafter, they used to listen to the story recounted by Jayanta. All
of them were pure (in body and mind). They observed silence. They
were interested in stories of Vasudeva. They were devoutly engaged
in the holy rites of VaiSakha. They were devoid of hypocrisy and la
ziness. 1 entered that assembly out of curiosity and with a desire to see
(what was going on there).
13-16. Wearing a turban, I did not bow down my head. I had betel-
leaves still in my mouth. I did not take away the shirt that had been
worn by me. Taking interest in gossip and rumour, I disturbed the (at
mosphere of the) holy story. The mind of everyone became unsteady
(and distracted) on account of the gossip.
Some time I stretched the clothes; some time I censured the people.
I laughed loudly on some occasion. Thus the time was spent by me till
the conclusion (of the discourse). Afterwards due to the same fault, I
had a loss of memory immediately. I became short-lived. On the next
day, 1died as a result of the combined derangement of all the humours.
17-21. I fell into the hell Halahala filled with molten lead and
experienced the tortures therein for fourteen Manvantaras.
I was born in succession in all the eight million four hundred thou
sand species of living beings. Now I lived on this tree a hundred Yojanas
high and ten Yojanas in girth. I lived here in a4iollow seven Yojanas
long, as a cruel serpent of Tamasa nature. Oppressed by that early
(sinful and indecent) action (of mine), I have been staying here in the
form of a serpent thus. Ten thousand years have elapsed since I began
to live in this hollow without getting any food. Fortunately, I heard
through my pair of eyes (which happened to be my ears too) the nectar-
like story that issued from your lotus-like mouth. Hence, О sage, all
my inauspiciousness has been destroyed.
22. I have discarded my form of a serpent and have become a
person of divine form. With palms joined in reverence I bow down to
you. I take refuge in your feet.
23-26. In which birth you were my kinsman, I do not know, О ex
cellent sage. No one has been helped by me (so far). How could I be
sympathetic to good people?
108 Skanda Parana
Honourable and pious men are of impartial mind. They are always
compassionate towards all living beings. They are by nature ready to
help others. Their mind is not otherwise. Bless me now, so that my
mind will be inclined towards Dharma. One should never forget Visnu,
the Discus-bearing Lord. Let there be constant association with great
men of saintly conduct. Let there be poverty alone, to act as the
greatest collyrium (to dispel) the blindness due to arrogance.”
27-29. Thus he eulogized him in various ways and bowed down to
him again and again. With palms joined in reverence, he made obei
sance to him and stood in front of him silently. Sankha was completely
overwhelmed with love. He lifted him up with both the hands and
stroked his limbs with his highly auspicious hand, without any undue
excitement. He blessed the Brahmana in divine form. With great kind
ness he spoke to him immediately, about the future events:
30. “O Brahmana, all your bondage has been destroyed immedi
ately after listening to the greatness of the month as well as to that
of Hari.
31. After wiping out the stigma, you will go back to the earth
once again and be born again as an excellent Brahmana in the meri
torious land of Da£arna.
32. You will be famous by the name VedaSarma. You will be an
expert in all the Vedas. There you will have perfect and auspicious
recollection of the previous births.
33. With the recollection of unbroken sequence (of events), you
will become splendid. You will eschew all sorts of attachments to the
mundane pleasures. You will perform all the holy rites laid down for
the month of VaiSakha which is so dear to Hari.
34. In that birth you will be free from the Dvandvas (mutually
opposed pairs), devoid of desire, devoted to the preceptors, unattached
to sensuous feelings and with all the sense-organs perfectly under con
trol. You will be talking about the stories of Visnu constantly.
35. Then you will attain Siddhi with all the bondages cut asunder.
You will go to the greatest abode inaccessible even through Yogic
practices.
36-38. Do not be afraid, dear son; with my favour you will secure
welfare. If anyone utters at least once the sin-dispelling name of Visnu
for the sake of fun or out of fear, anger or hatred, with love, affection
or great desire, even the greatest of sinners goes to the abode of Visnu
devoid of ailments. Then those who are endowed with faith and com
passion, those who have subdued anger and the sense-orgai)^ will still
DLvii.21.39-54 109
CHAPTER TWENTYTWO
Liberation of Pitrs
Maithileya asked:
l-6a. What are the meritorious lunar days in the month of Vaigakha?
What are the different charitable gifts recommended particularly in
those Tithis? What are those Tithis which are very popular in the
world? Speak out in detail.
Srutadeva said:
(All) the thirty Tithis are meritorious in Vaigakha when the Sun is
in Aries.
112 SkandaPuram
his own daughter. All people became enamoured of £iidra women; all
were fascinated by the charms of harlots.
46. People ignored good and honourable men. They hououred those
having committed many sins. Foolishly stubborn persons eagerly pointed
out even a single defect of good men.
47. Defects and blemishes of sinners are spoken of as good quali
ties. In Kali (Age) all the people devoid of good qualities, take only
defects into account.
48-51. People were endowed with the characteristic quality of the
leech which drinks only blood and not milk, not even water. Medicines
become devoid of (their) potency; the seasons have undergone reverse
changes.
There is famine in all the kingdoms. No woman delivered children
at the right time. In Kali Age, men take great pleasure and interest in
the arts of actors and dancers.
Foolish and stupid persons looked upon honourable men as their
servants—those men who were superior in qualities and were engaged
in the study of Vedas and Vedantas.
People had abandoned $raddha rites. All the people left off the holy
rites laid down in the Vedas. The names of Visnu never occur on their
tongues. The romantic sentiment of love gave them great bliss. They
sang songs of erotic nature.
52. There was no service to Visnu; no discussion of scriptural
topics. There was no initiation for the purpose of sacrifices. There was
not even the least consideration. No pilgrimage was undertaken; no
charitable gifts were given; and no holy rites were performed by people
during Kali Age. It was something surprising.
53. On seeing those things, Dharmavarna became exceedingly
surprised and very much frightened. On seeing the whole race heading
towards destruction, he went to another continent.
54-56. After wandering over all the continents and worlds that in
telligent (Brahmana) went once to the world of Pitrs out of curiosity.
There he saw his own Manes and ancestors in a terrible plight. Due
to their Karmas, they were exhausted and weary. They ran about here
and there. They cried and lamented. Some of them had fallen into a
blinding dark well. Some were about to fall therein.1
1. The birth of a son for the continuity of the family was looked upon as
essential for providing food and water to the departed forefathers (vv 77-83). This
figurative description of manes about to fall in abysmal depth is found in Mbh and
other Puranas.
116 SkandaPuram
CHAPTER TWENTYTHREE
Srutadeva said:
1-5 Now I shall narrate the sin-destroying special efficacy of
Aksayatrtlya occurring in the bright half of Vaisakha.
All those who take the holy bath early in the morning at sunrise on
that day, shall be rid of sins. They will go to the great region of Visnu.
If a person offers water libation with the Dcvas, Pitrs and sages in
view, it is as good as the performance of Vedic studies, of sacrifices
and of a hundred §raddhas by him.
Men who worship Madhusudana and listen to the (divine) story on
the Aksayatrtlya day are partakers of salvation.
If people make charitable gifts on that day for the propitiation of
the Slayer of Madhu, it will have auspicious and inexhaustible benefit
at the bidding of the Slayer of Madhu (Visnu).
6. This Tithi is exceedingly auspicious. It has Devas, sages and
Pitrs as its deities. It accords satisfaction unto all these three, when
the eternal Dharma is performed (on this day).
7. I shall tell, О tiger among kings, the reason for which this
Tithi has become famous. Listen to it with great mental concentration.
8. Formerly Purandara fought with Bali. Thereafter Devas and
Daityas fought with each other.
9-14. After defeating Bali and forcing him to stay in the nether
worlds, he (Indra) came to the earth once again. He w$nt to the her
II.vii.23.15-20 121
Indra said:
39-41. On account of the sexual contact with another man’s wife,
my strength, vigour, pure reputation, the power of Mantras, the power
of scriptural texts and the power of learning—all these have vanished.
Hence I remain silent.
Brhaspati said:
42. This month is Vaisakha by name. It is liked much by the
Slayer of Madhu. In this month all the lunar days are meritorious. It
is the most favourite month of Madhava.
43-45. There too in the bright half of this month (the third day)
named Aksaya (is the most favourite). If anyone performs holy bath,
charitable gift, etc. with faith, thousands of his sins do perish. There
is no doubt about it. His prosperity will be free from blemishes. He
will acquire strength and courage. Hence for the sake of attaining the
benefit, we shall make Indra perform all the good holy rites such as
holy bath, charitable gift etc. (on the Aksaya Trtlya day).
46. He will regain that power of Vidya, Mantra and scriptural
texts. He will have strength, courage and reputation as before.
47. After conferring thus along with the Devas, Guru (i.e. Jupiter)
made Indra perform all these holy rites which delight Hari.
48. He made him perform all those holy rites which yield worldly
pleasures, on the third lunar day named Aksaya. Thereby the courage,
strength etc. of the lord attained the previous level.
124 Skanda Parana
49. The sin of sexual contact with another man's wife disappeared
immediately. Thereafter Sakra, whose inauspiciousness was destroyed,
became like the Moon liberated from Rahu.
50-55. Like Visnu he shone amidst the Devas. Afterwards accom
panied by Devas he defeated Asuras. It was due to the great potency
of the TrtTya that he entered AmaravatT with all glory and a fanfare
of conchs and musical instruments. Permitted by $akra the Suras went
to their respective abodes. Then they got back their shares in the Yajnas
as before. Pitrs got their shares of the rice-balls as before. The sages
were contented with the study of the Vedas. The Daityas faced defeat.
Ever since then the TrtTya named Aksaya became famous in all the
worlds. It bestowed satisfaction on the Devas, sages and Pitrs. Hence
this is highly meritorious. It destroys all Karmas. The TrtTya named
Aksaya yields worldly pleasures and salvation to men.
CHAPTER TWENTYFOUR
Srutadeva said:
1-5. Of these meritorious Tithis,1the twelfth day in the bright half
of the month of Vaigakha, О great king, is destructive of all masses
of sins.
If DvadagT is not resorted to (i.e. observed religiously) by people,
of what avail are charitable gifts, penances, observances of fasts, holy
rites, sacrifices and rites of public utility such as digging of wells
etc.?
By taking the holy bath on the day of Hari in the morning, one
obtains that benefit which is usually obtained by one who gifts away
a thousand cows on the banks of Gariga during an eclipse.
If cooked rice is given on the twelfth day in the auspicious bright
half of Vaigakha, each lump of the rice offered is equal in merit to
feeding a crore of Brahmanas.
One who gives a pot of gingelly seeds along with honey on the
l. In this Mahatmya, the Tithis specially described as meritorious are the new-
moon day, EkadalT, Trtiyi and Dvadatf. Hence the plural Tithi$u. PdP adds SaptamT
(7th day) to the list of these special days.
II.vii.24.6-22a 125
twelfth day, rids himself of all bondages and is honoured in the world
of Visnu.
6. One should perform the Jagarana (‘keeping awake*) of Hari on
the eleventh day of the bright half. One shall then be a living-liberated
soul. All the deities shall be delighted.
7. By taking the holy bath on Hart’s day early in the morning,
one obtains that benefit which is obtained by plunging into the TTrthas
during crores of lunar and solar eclipses.
8. One should worship Visnu with tender leaves of TulasI on the
DvadaST day. One shall then redeem the entire family and become the
lord of the world of Visnu.
[Interpolation: Worship of A^vattha tree with flowers and leaves of
TulasI (must be performed). If flowers etc. are not available, one shall
worship Madhusudana by means of grains.]1
9-11. Listen to the merit of that person who gives rice mixed with
curds, a pot of water and appropriate monetary gifts on the twelfth day
in the bright half of Vai$akha. At the bidding of the Chastiser of Madhu
(Visnu), he obtains that merit which is obtained by one who feeds a
crore of persons every year throughout with delicious dishes having all
the six tastes.
12. One who makes the gift of a Saligrama stone on the twelfth
day in the bright half of Vai€akha is rid of all sins.
13. If the devotee bathed Madhusudana with milk on the twelfth
day, the merit obtained thereby is equal to that which is obtained by
performing Rajasuya and horse-sacrifices.
14. For the propitiation of Madhusudana, one should worship Visnu
on the thirteenth day with various materials such as sugar and honey
mixed with milk and curds.
15-22a. (Thereby) he attains that result on the banks of Ganga. There
is no doubt about it (?)
One who devoutly bathes Lord Visnu with Pahcamita shall redeem
the entire family. He is honoured in the world of Visnu.
He who offers sweet drinks in the evening on this day for the plea
sure of Hari, immediately casts off old sins like a serpent casting off
old slough.
One who gives sweet concoction of cucumber in the evening shall
become liberated from the bondage of Karmas thereby.
The devotee should give sugarcane, mango fruit and grapes; there
1. The interpolation is probably due to the influence of PdP where the worship
of A£vattha with flowers and TulasF leaves is prescribed.
/26 SkandaPurana
over (anyone). Then she bowed down (to the YoginI) and gave her a
ring of great value that was studded with diamonds and rubies, that had
a very brilliant red lustre, that was made of gold soft to the touch and
that had the refulgence on a par with the rays of the sun.
On seeing the ring placed at her feet, the YoginI became delighted.
She could understand the reaction in her heart due to the disregard of
her husband. The (Brahmana lady) was told thus, О king, by the ascetic
woman engaged in her welfare: “This powder along with this amulet
is powerful enough to captivate all living beings. Give the powder to
your husband and wear the amulet round your neck. Your husband can
be won over. He will not approach any other beautiful woman. He will
not utter anything displeasing to you, even if you misbehave.”
39-45. With the powder and the amulet she came back to her husband’s
house. At dusk, the powder was administered to her husband in milk.
The amulet was tied round her neck. She did not feel worried there
after. The husband (of the lady) who had drunk the milk along with the
powder, О most excellent king, became afflicted with consumption due
to that powder. He became tired and worn out day by day. Worms and
germs grew in abundance in the awfully putrefying wounds. Within a
few days the condition of the husband became exceedingly critical.
But she lived as she was pleased with her vicious deeds and union with
different men.
The husband whose natural lustre and brilliance perished and whose
sense-organs became disordered continued to lament day and night. He
said to her: “O splendid lady, I am your slave. I seek refuge in you.
Save me. I do not at all wish for any other woman.” On realizing his
plight, she became afraid, О king. She desired that her husband should
continue to live not because she wanted his welfare, but because she
wanted him as her ornament. She immediately went to the YoginI and
said everything to her.
46. A second drug was handed over to her for quelling the burning
sensation. When the drug was administered the husband got relief in
stantaneously and regained his normal health.
47-51. The paramour (of hers) stayed on in the house under the pre
text of attending to some domestic work (of urgency). She had lovers
belonging to all castes and creeds, all staying in the house itself. The
husband was powerless to say anything (against her). Yet, the sin
arising from her misdeeds produced germs in her body. They pierced
her bones. They were like Kala, the annihilator, and Yama, the con
troller. Holes were made by them in the nose, tongue and ears as well
128 Skanda Parana
as in the breasts. The fingers became split. She became lame and
ultimately she died. She met with hellish tortures. She was roasted and
boiled in a copper cauldron for one hundred and fifty thousand years.
She was then reborn repeatedly a hundred times as a bitch.
52? She always had some defect, e.g. the nose cut or the ears split.
Her head became infested with worms always. Sometimes the tail was
cut or a foot broken. She was flogged in every house.
53. Afterwards, she was born as a bitch in the house of the maid
servant of Brahmana Padmabandhu in the land of Sauvlra. In this life
too she suffered from many miseries.
54. She had her nose cut, ears split, eyes damaged and the tail
amputated. She was greatly bewildered. The head became infested
with worms and the vaginal passage too became infected and putrefied.
55-57. Thus, О king, thirty years passed by in this birth. As good
luck would have it, as a result of her own Karma (the following events
happened). On the twelfth day in the bright half of Vai£akha month,
when the Sun was in Aries, Padmabandhu’s son took his bath in a river
and went home with his clothes fully drenched, with bodily and mental
purity. He went near the raised platform for TulasT plants and washed
his feet. Beneath the platform the bitch lay asleep.1
58. In the morning, at the time of sunrise, she was bathed in the
waters with which the feet were washed. Immediately all the inaus
piciousness perished and she had the recollection of her previous births.
59-64. Recollecting the deeds committed by her previously, that
bitch howled piteously saying “O sage, save me.” Recollecting her
evil actions she described them to the great ascetic. She was exceed
ingly frightened. She told him how she administered poison to her husband
and what all wicked things she did. “O Brahmana, if any other young
woman were to administer drug for winning over her husband she will
be wicked in conduct. Her Dharma will be futile. She will be fried
and cooked in (in the hell named Tamrabhajana or) copper vessels (in
the hells).
Husband is the leader and support; husband is the preceptor. Hus
band is the excellent deity. If she acts detrimentally (to her husband),
how can a chaste woman attain happiness? She will be reborn hundred
times among lower animals. She will be born hundreds of times and
crores of times as a worm. Hence, О Brahmana, the behests of their
husband must be carried out by women.
Padmabandhu said:
90. О my son, how is it that such words were uttered by you?
These are not the words of good men, О son of excellent countenance.
91-92. Sinners who do everything for the sake of their own happiness
are treated with contempt. See, my son, all people (should work) for
helping others. The moon, the sun, wind, night, fire, water, sandalwood,
trees and good people—all these help others.
93. On coining to know that Daityas were exceedingly powerful,
the gift of his own bones was made by DadhTci mercifully for helping
Devas.
ILvii.24.94-106 131
94. О highly fortunate one, formerly his own flesh was given to
a hungry hawk for the sake of (helping) a dove by king $ibi.
95. There was a king formerly on the earth named JTmiitavahana.
His life was surrendered by him too for the noble-souled Garuda.
96-98. Hence a learned Brahmana must be merciful. Lord (Indra)
showers rain on the pure ones. But does he not shower rain on the
impure ones (too)? Does not the moon always illuminate the house of
Candalas too? Hence I will redeem this bitch who is repeatedly en
treating by means of my own merits just as one lifts up a cow sinking
into mire.
Thus the highly intelligent one promised after repudiating his son:
99-103. “The great merit arising from the Dvada£T day is given, is
given. О Bitch, go to the abode of Hari, rid of all your sins."
At these words she suddenly cast off her old worn out body. She
became a splendid (lady) having a divine form. She had the refulgence
of a hundred suns comparable to Goddess Savitrl. She took leave of
that Brahmana and went away brightening the ten quarters.
She enjoyed excellent pleasures in heaven and afterwards was born
on the earth from Nara and Narayana, the lord, under the name UrvaST.1
By the power of the twelfth day in the bright half of Vai£akha she
became a favourite of Devas and attained the state of a celestial damsel.
104-106. The bitch became a goddess. She attained the form which
can be attained by Yogins, has the refulgence of fire and is very ex
cellent and worthy of being coveted, is the highest object of desire,
having attained which even saints become deluded.
Afterwards Padmabandhu made that Tithi popular—that Tithi which
increases merit and which is very dear to Visnu. It is superior to a
crore of lunar and solar eclipses; it is more meritorious than all the
merits put together; it surpasses even all the Yajnas put together. Such
a tithi was made famous in all the three worlds by that Brahmana.
CHAPTER TWENTYFIVE
The Conclusion
Srutadeva said:
1-4. The three meritorious Tithis, toward the end of the bright half,
ending with the full-moon day, in the month of Vaisakha,1 are very
auspicious.
The last Tithis are called Puskarinl. They are destructive of all
sins. If one is incompetent to take holy bath throughout the month of
Vaisakha, he should take bath in these Tithis. He will get the full
benefit. All the Devas come on the Trayoda^T day and sanctify crea
tures.
On the full-moon day they appear here along with Visnu and all the
Tirthas. On the CaturdaSI day Devas sanctify these along with Yajnas.
5-8. They sanctify everyone whether (he be) a murderer of a Brahmana
or a drink-addict. It was on the Ekadasi day in the month of VaiSakha
that the splendid nectar appeared formerly. On the Dvadasi day it was
guarded by Visnu, the powerful one. On the TrayodasT day Hari made
the Devas drink the nectar. On the CaturdaSI the Lord killed the Daityas
who were antagonistic to Devas. On the full-moon day the Devas regained
their sovereignty. Thereupon, the exceedingly delighted Devas granted
boons to these three Tithis. Out of delight their eyes beamed like full
blown (lotuses).
9. These three Tithis of the month of VaiSakha are very auspi
cious. They bestow sons, grandsons and other benefits on men. They
are conducive to the destruction of sins.
10. A base man who does not take bath throughout this month,
shall obtain the full benefit by taking the holy bath on these three
Tithis.
11. A man who does not take the holy bath or does not perform
the holy rites or make charitable gifts etc. during these three Tithis
too, is reborn in the womb of a Candala woman and then falls into
Raurava hell.
1. The author follows Purnimanta masa—the calendar in which the month ends
with Purnima, full-moon day. Hence the importance of the last three 'Pu$karinV
Tithis, viz. 13th, 14th and 15th (full moon) of VaUakha. if one observes Vailakha
Vratas on these Tithis, he gets full result of complete observance of this Vrata.
Though verse 2 calls these collectively ‘PuskarinT*, the name real1y,designates only
the full-moon day (v 18).
II.vii.25.12-24 133
&гТBhagavan said:
38b-43. During the three days towards the close of the bright half
of the month of Vaigakha when the Sun is in Aries, which is as dear
to me as my vital airs, all of you do flood over the water that is present
in the open air. It is meritorious and full of all the TTrthas(?) Thereby
you will be rid of those sins. You will have meritorious forms free from
impurities. May the sins dropped into you all by people and then dis
charged by you all stay in those persons who do not take the holy bath
during all those three days.
Narada said:
62-64. Thus, О AmbarTsa, the great narrative has been recounted to
you. By listening to it one can destroy all the sins. It brings about all
riches. Thereby one obtains worldly pleasures and salvation and per
fect knowledge.
Suta said:
67b-69. He who listens to or reads this great story that destroys sins
and increases merit attains the greatest goal. Salvation is within the
reach of those persons in whose house a manuscript of this book exists,
О bestowers of honour. What to speak of those who listen to it them
selves!
:: End of Vaigakhamasa-Mahatmya ::
S ection VIII: AY O D H Y A -M A H A TM Y A
CHAPTER ONE
V yasa said:
Holy sages from various places had been invited and they had
assembled there. All the sages who had mastered the Vedas and
were the inhabitants of Himalayas, the residents of Naimisa forest1
(had come there with their disciples).
(Sages) who were great souls, knowers of all the three times
(i.e. past, present and future), those who resided in Arbuda (Mt.
Abu) forest, Dandaka forest, Mahendra mountain, Vindhya moun
tain, Jariibu forest, banks of Godavari, Varanasi, the residents of
Mathura, celibate ones, those dwelling at UjjayinI, those who had
resorted to Dvaraka and Badarika£rama, the residents of Mayapurl
(Haridwar) and Kanti (KancI)—all these and many other sages
devoid of impurities had come there along with their disciples.
All of them were pure in mind. They had mastered Vedas and
Vedangas. After their holy bath they performed Japa and other
holy rites duly with Bharadvaja (? Bharadvaja), the master of
Vedas and Vedangas as their leader, they occupied different kinds
of seats such as Brsl etc. in their due order.
They discussed different kinds of TIrthas during the intervals
between two holy rites. Seated comfortably they talked to one
another freely.
Towards the end of the discussions of those sages of purified
souls, Suta12, the highly intelligent sage of great refulgence, came
there. His name was Romaharsana. He was a disciple of Vyasa.
He was conversant with the Puranas.
After making obeisance to those sages in their proper order and
after being permitted by the sages, he too sat down. The pure and
excellent sages, Bharadvaja (?) and others, asked the excellent
sage, Suta Romaharsana:
1. Naimisa Forest: Generally taken as Nimsar, near the Nimsar Station of the
former Oudh-Rohilkhand railway (De 135) But V.V. Mirashi has shown it to be
somewhere in Sultanpur District, some 40 miles from Ayodhya (Purana X.I.34). VaP
1.1.10.12 records a Naimisa forest at Kuruksetra where AdhisTma Krsna performed
a Sattra.
2. Suta: It is the name of the subcaste of the Purana narrator Romaharsana A
Suta is an offspring of a Brahmana female and a K$atriya male (Manu X. 11; Yajfiavalkya
1.93). He was not eligible for Vedic Studies but could recite Itihasa and Purana. At
the time of Kauplya, the reciter of a Purana, “Pauranika”, had a higher status as
a sage (Arthasastra III.7). Later Purana-writers (tike the present writer) confirmed
his status. Romaharsana is probably his title due to the thrilling effect o f his oratory.
II. viii. 1.15-24 141
Suta said:
22. О ascetics, I know all the Puranas along with the legendary
anecdotes and the esoteric doctrines truly with the favour of Vyasa.
23. After bowing down to him, I shall recount to you all, the
glory of the great city of Ayodhya as it actually exists along with
all the secrets.
24.1 always bow down to the great man Vedavyasa, son of РагаЗага,
the excellent and calm-minded sage who is endowed with learning,
is bestower of noble and great intellect, can be understood through
Vedas and Vedangas, has subdued all (desires for) sensual pleasures,
who has pure and extensive refulgence, is always modest and whose
1. Sarayu: The river rises in Kumaun mountains and came to be called Sarayu
after its confluence with the KilinadT (De 182). But Mbh (Adi 169.20-21) regards
that it is one of the seven streams of GaAga from Himalayas. Later in Anusasana
155.23-24, the Manasa lake is said to be its source.
II. viii. 1.39-50 143
Vyasa said:
53-54. О great Brahmana, whence are you coming back? О
excellent sage, you are experiencing abundance of supreme bliss
now. What is the reason for which this extreme delight has oc
curred to you? О Brahmana, speak it to me. Seeing your delight,
my heart too feels exceedingly delighted.
Agastya said:
55-56. Oh! It is a great wonder. It is highly surprising, О
excellent sage. On seeing the glory of Ayodhya, О ascetic, I have
attained this excessive bliss today.
Vyasa said:
57-58. О holy lord, tell me accurately and in detail, the great
ness and glory of the great city Ayodhya along with its secrets
and its superior qualities. What is the procedure of the pilgrim
age? What are the TTrthas? What is the method of performing the
Yatra? What is the benefit of the holy bath therein? О great sage,
what is the benefit of the charitable gift (given there)? Recount
all this in detail, О excellent one among eloquent persons.
Agastya replied:
59. Oh! Blessed indeed is your intellect, О ascetic, for you are
enquiring about the glory of Ayodhya.
60. The letter “ A” indicates Brahman (Brahma?); Visnu is
meant by the letter “ УА” . The letter “DHA" is a form of Rudra.
Thus shines the name Ayodhya.1
I. A Puranic etymology attributing meaning to every syllable of A-xo-dhxa.
II. v iii.1.61-78 145
61. Since this city is not reached by all (major) sins like the
murder of a Вrah man a etc. along with minor sins, it (the city) is
known as Ayodhya. (i.e. The city is beyond the pale of sins.)
62. О Brahmana, this is the first city of Visnu. It does not touch
the earth. This city that causes merit on the earth is stationed on
Sudar£ana, the Discus of Visnu.
63. By whom can the glory of this (city) be (adequately) de
scribed, О ascetic? It is here that Lord Visnu himself dwells res
pectfully.
64-67. The holy place is situated thus1: Beginning from Sahasra-
dhara, a distance of a Yojana constitutes the eastern part. Simi
larly in the west too, the limit is Samata (?) up to one Yojana.
In the southern and the northern parts Sarayii and Tamasa form
the boundary. This is the situation of the holy place. This is the
place wherein stands the sanctum sanctorum of Hari. This city of
Visnu is said to have the shape of a fish. Its head is in the west
between Gopratara and Asita, О Brahmana. Its back is in the east
and its middle portion lies from north to south. In this city, О
highly fortunate one, the Lord designated as Visnu-Hari dwells.
His power is already well-known.
Vyasa said:
68. О holy lord, what is the power of this Lord who is glorified
by you as Visnu-Hari?2О tiger among sages, how did he become
famous? Describe all this in detail to me.
Agastya said:
69-78. Formerly there was an excellent Brahmana well-known
by the name Visnu $arma. He was a knower of the essence of
Vedas and Vedahgas; he was devoted to pious and holy rites. He
regularly practised Yoga and meditation. He was engrossed in
devotion to Visnu. That excellent Vaisnava came to Ayodhya once
in the course of his pilgrimage.
The heroic Brahmana Visnu (£arma) thought that Visnu must
be present there directly and personally. (For that purpose) he
began to perform penance. He started his austerities with green
1. Boundaries of Purinic Ayodhya.
2 The story is meant to explain the name of the deity *'Visnu-Hari* which was
so-called as it was installed by Vi$nu §arma, vv 101-105.
146 SkandaPurana
grandfather. You are Havis. You are Vasatkara; you are the master.
You are the Fire-god. You alone are the instrument, cause and the
creator; you alone are the greatest lord.
О Madhava, wielding the conch, discus and iron club in the
hands, redeem me. Be pleased, О supporter of the Mandara mountain;
be pleased, О slayer of Madhu; be pleased, О lover of Kamala;
be pleased, О lord of the worlds.
Agastya said:
88-91. As he eulogized with great devotion in his mind, Visnu,
the soul of the universe appeared before that noble-souled (Brahmana).
He was seated on Garuda, holding the conch, discus and iron club
in his hands and wearing yellow robes.
Acyuta, the immutable one, who was delighted in his mind said
to Visnu Sarma:
Agastya said:
95-98. After saying thus, the Lord of the chiefs of Devas dug
that spot with his discus and made the water of Ganga manifest
itself from the sphere of the nether worlds.
148 SkandaPurana
The Lord, the storehouse of mercy, made the ground free from
sin in a trice mercifully, by means of that sacred water. Ever since
then, О Brahmana, that became renowned as CakratTrtha.1 That
became a splendid TTrtha destroying mass of sins and renowned
in all the three worlds. By taking the holy bath there, and making
charitable gifts, one shall go to the world of Visnu.
99. Then Lord Visnu, Acyuta, who is friendly and favourable
to Brahmanas, became filled with great compassion and said to
Visnu Sarma:
Sn Bhagavan said:
100. Let my idol stay here, О Brahmana, with your name prefixed.
It shall be well-known as Visnuhari. It shall be the bestower of
salvation.
Agastya said:
101-105. On hearing these words of Vasudeva the intelligent
Brahmana installed an idol of the Discus-bearing Lord with his
own name prefixed. Ever since then, О chief one among Brahmanas,
the Lord stationed himself there under the name Visnuhari, hold
ing the conch, discus and iron club in his hands and wearing
yellow garments.
The annual festival will begin from the tenth day of the bright
half of the month of Karttika and conclude on the full-moon day.
By taking his holy bath in CakratTrtha a man is liberated from all
sins. He is honoured in heaven for many thousands years. If people
offer rice-balls, with Pitrs in view, the Pitrs shall become con
tented. They will go to the world of Visnu. There is no doubt
about it.
106-109. By taking holy bath in CakratTrtha and by visiting
Lord Visnuhari, one shall get all the sins destroyed and shall be
honoured in heaven.
The man who is freed from sins shall make charitable gifts in
1. CakratTrtha: De 43 records one CakratTrtha at (1) Kuruk$etra, (2) Prabhisa,
(3) Tryambaka, (4) VaranasT and (5) Rame£vara but none at Ayodhya. Kane adds
Amelaka-grama, Ka£mTr, Mathura, Asthipura (HD IV, 742) but none at Ayodhyd.
But the author gives us the details and the importance of the CakratTrtha at Ayodhya.
As in other places, this CakratTrtha was created by Vi$nu's discus.
The annual celebration of this deity takes place from the 10th *fithi to the 15th
Tithi (full-moon day) of the bright half of Karttika.
Il.vin.2.1-6 149
CHAPTER TWO
Suta said:
1. After recounting the story pertaining to CakratTrtha thus, О
excellent Brahmanas, Sage Agastya began to narrate further the
story of Lord Visnuhari.
Agastya said:
2. After coming to know that Lord Hari, Acyuta, had become
resident of Ayodhya formerly, Brahma, the creator of the uni
verse, stationed himself too there.
3. After his arrival there Brahma duly performed the pilgrim
age. And after collecting the different requisites (of a sacrifice)
he performed a sacrifice according to the injunctions.
4. Thereafter, Brahma, the grandfather of the worlds, made a
Kunda known after his name.1 It was large and frequented by
many deities.
5-6. It is a sacred pit that is destructive of sins. It is large; its
Brahma said:
11-12. May all the Suras listen attentively to the efficacy of this
Kunda along with the different kinds of benefit accruing there
from. Listen to it, ye Suras who are (obviously) surprised. By
taking the holy bath here in accordance with the injunctions even
sinful creatures will be clad in fascinating robes. They will occupy
an aerial chariot fitted with swans and go to the world of Brahma.
They will stay there till all the living beings are annihilated.
13. (Corrupt reading) О excellent suras, acquire merit here by
performing charity, Нота, Tuladana and ASvamedha according to
your capacity.
14-18. By taking the holy bath in this lake of mine, a man
becomes glorious. Hence, if holy bath, charitable gifts, Japas etc.
are performed here in accordance with the injunctions, they shall
be on a par with all Yajfias and be destructive of all sins.
This holy pit shall attain renown of great excellence as Brahmakunda.
1 will always be present in this Kunda.
On the fourteenth day in the bright half of the month of Karttika,
О excellent Suras, the annual festival of mine shall always be
celebrated. It is conducive to auspiciousness and is destructive of
heaps of great sins.
Gold should be gifted always with various kinds of clothes, О
Il.vui.2.\9-31 \5\
Agastya said:
19-20. After saying thus, Brahma, the lord of Devas, the grand
father of the worlds, glanced at the TTrtha (once more) and van
ished along with the Suras, О ascetic. Ever since then that Kunda
became exceedingly famous on the earth. That great Kunda is
situated to the east of Cakratlrtha.
Suta said:
21. After saying this, Agastya, the pot-born sage, who had
accumulated a mass of penances was asked once again. The great
sage thereupon continued to recount the story to Vyasa.
Agastya said:
22. Listen to the efficacy of another TTrtha, О highly fortunate
one. It is a TTrtha very difficult of access to persons of evil
actions. It is called Rnamocana1 (‘Liberator from indebtedness’)
and it is adjacent to the banks of Sarayu.
23. О excellent sage, it is situated in the waters of Sarayu seven
hundred Dhanus (i.e. about 700 metres) to the north-east of Brahma-
kunda.
24. Formerly, the excellent sage named Loma£a came there
during his pilgrimage. He performed the rite of holy bath in accordance
with the injunctions.
25. Thereby he became free from indebtedness and got rid of
his sins. On observing this great miracle, he gladly spoke to the
sages.
26-31. Tears welled up in his eyes. He lifted up his arms and
spoke out with great delight:
Lomasa said:
May (the sages) see the merits of this great TTrtha, the most
excellent one among all the TTrthas. This is the most excellent
TIrtha named Rnamocana. By taking the holy bath here living
beings will be able to repay'all their debts of this world as well
as of the world hereafter, the three-fold debt of men. All these
perish instantaneously on taking bath in this TIrtha.
This is the most excellent of all the TTrthas. It immediately
furnishes proof worthy of belief. Its benefit has been perfectly
experienced by me. (I have got rid) of my indebtedness. Hence
holy bath and charitable gifts must be made here in accordance
with one's capacity and in accordance with the injunctions, by
persons endowed with faith and desirous of benefits. They must
take bath and give away gold, clothes etc. according to (their)
capacity.
Agastya said:
32. After mentioning the great efficacy of the TIrtha thus,
Loma£a, the excellent one among sages, vanished while joyously
eulogizing the TIrtha.
33-35. Thus, О Brahmanas, the* TIrtha named Rnamocana has
been described. By taking a holy bath therein the indebtedness of
living beings perishes instantaneously. The TIrtha called Rnamocana
is in the water of Sarayu in the East.
Within a distance of twenty Dhanus (1 Dhanu=3!/2 Hastas) therefrom
is the TIrtha named Papamocana1. By taking holy bath therein one
gets his soul rid of all sins instantaneously. No doubt need be
entertained in this respect. О excellent sage, the great glory (of
the TIrtha) has been witnessed by me.
36. There was a Вrah mana in the land of Pancala, named Narahari.
As a result of contact with bad people, he became a sinner.
37. On account of his association with sinners he became one
who censured the path of Vedas. He committed different kinds of
sins such as that of murder of a Brahmana etc.
38-43. Once he happened to be in contact with some good
people engaged in pilgrimage. О Brahmana, that Brahmana, the
perpetrator of great sins, came to Ayodhya along with them.
Suta said:
47. On hearing these words of the Pot-born Sage, Krsna Dvaipayana
Vyasa asked him again out of curiosity.
Vyasa said:
48. О sage of good excellent holy rites, narrate in detail the
greatness of Sahasradhara. My mind is not fully satiated by lis
tening to the glory of the Tirtha.
Agastya said:
49. Even as I recount the story, О sage, listen to it with rapt
attention. I shall recount the origin of the TTrtha Sahasradhara, the
story of which is conducive to great prosperity.
50. Formerly, Rama, the leader of Raghus, completed the task
of Devas. The great king met Kala and began to discuss some
matters with him.
51. He made the stipulation: “ If anyone comes near us and sees
us taking counsel together, he is to be punished by me immedi
ately.”
52-53. While they were discussing and Laksmana was standing
at the entrance, Durvasas, the great ascetic and storehouse of refulgence,
came there. On his arrival, he immediately spoke to Laksmana
lovingly, as he was famished and agitated.
Durvasas said:
54. О son of Sumitra, go quickly and report to Rama that I am
here on a job. It does not behove you to disobey this (request of
mine).
Agastya said:
55. As he was afraid of his curse, the son of Sumitra hurried
to their presence. He informed Rama that Sage Durvasas, son of
Atri, had come and sought an audience with him (Rama).
56-58 Rama took leave of Kala and sent him off. Coming out
he met the sage and bowed down to him with great respect. The
Lord fed the excellent Sage Durvasas himself and bade farewell
to him. Afraid of violating his own vow, the heroic Rama aban
doned Laksmana then.
Laksmana, the great warrior, wanted to make the words of his
elder brother true. The hero of great intellect came to the banks
of Sarayu.
59-61. He went there, took his holy bath, resorted to meditation
immediately and fixed his tranquil mind on the Soul of Perfect
Consciousness. He stayed there thus.
Thereupon $esa, the excellent Serpent, adorned with a thousand
hoods, pierced the ground in a thousand places and appeared before
him. Surendra from the world of Suras came there along with the
immortal beings. Then, even as the Suras remained there watch-
W . N \ \ \ l. « r l4
Indra said:
62-68. О Laksmana, get up. Quickly go up to your own po
sition. О heroic slayer of enemies, the task of the Devas has been
accomplished by you. Attain the great eternal abode of Visnu.
Your own original form, Sesa, has come with his graceful hoods.
He pierced the earth in thousand places by means of his thou
sand hoods. Since they have come up by piercing a thousand holes
in the earth, О prince of good holy rites, since the places were
burnt (i.e. brightly lit up) by the crest jewels on the thousand
hoods of Sesa, this splendid TTrtha on the banks of Sarayu shall
become well-known as Sahasradhara. There is no doubt about it.
The extent of this holy spot is twenty-five Dhanus. By taking
holy bath here and giving charitable gifts as well as by performing
£raddha with sincerity one shall get rid of all sins in his soul and
shall go to the world of Visnu.
The man who takes his bath here, intelligently worships £esa,
the immutable one, and duly adores the TTrtha, shall attain the
world of Visnu.
Therefore, the rite of taking the holy bath here should be performed
in accordance with the injunctions. Brahmanas should be particu
larly worshipped and meditated upon as serpents in the form of
$esa.
69-73. Gold, cooked rice and clothes should be given by per
sons endowed with sincerity and faith. Holy bath, charitable gift
and the worship of Hari—everything shall have infinite (merit).
Hence this TTrtha shall become a great TTrtha always bestowing
all desired objects on the earth. There is no doubt about this.
On the fifth day in the bright half of the month of Sravana a
grand festival with serpents in view, with the worship of Sesa as
the main function, should be celebrated with great effort by good
people. If the festival is celebrated in that great TTrtha by men,
if Brahmanas are devoutly propitiated along with the worship of
serpents, all the serpents will become delighted and will never
harass men.
74. Those who take holy bath here with concentration and
mental purity in the month of Vai£akha, will never return to the
earth even in hundreds and crores of Kalpas.
156 Skanda Pur ana
Agastya said:
81-84. After saying this, О eminent sage, Indra installed Sesa,
i.e. Laksmana who got merged into £esa and who was capable of
removing the burden of the earth, in that holy TTrtha. He made
Laksmana sit in his vehicle and started for heaven.
Ever since then that TTrtha attained great fame. The glory of
the TTrtha in the month of Vai6akha is said to be very great,
particularly on the fifth day in the bright half of the month of
Sravana. On other occasions such as Parvan days, one should take
special holy bath in Sahasradhara TTrtha. The man shall attain
heaven.
The intelligent and excellent man who duly performs holy bath
and charitable gifts in the TTrtha in accordance with his capacity,
shall become a purified soul. He shall enjoy immense pleasures.
By devotion he attains union with SrTpati who sleeps on the serpent
(Sesa).
II.viii.3.1-10 157
CHAPTER THREE
Suta said:
1-3. On hearing these words of the Pot-born Sage with great
respect, the intelligent sage Krsnadvaipayana spoke these sweet
words:
Vyasa said:
О holy lord, the glory of this TTrtha is excellent. On hearing
this from you my mind has attained supreme delight. Describe
accurately another excellent TTrtha even as I listen. On listening
to you, О sage of good holy rites, my mind is not fully satisfied.
Agastya said:
4. It is always destructive of all sins. Listen, О Brahmana, I
shall describe another excellent TTrtha well-known as Svargadvara.1
5. There is none who is competent to describe in detail the
glory of Svargadvara. Hence, О dear one of good holy rites, listen
to a brief (description).
6-7. According to experts, the knowers of Puranas, Svargadvara
has an extent of six hundred thirty-six Dhanus to the east of
Sahasradhara in the waters of Sarayu
8. (I aver it thrice) that it is true, it is the truth. My speech
is not untrue. There is no other TTrtha on a par with Svargadvara
in (the whole of) the sphere of the Cosmic Egg (Brahmanda-
golaka).
9. All the celestial and terrestrial TTrthas leave off their (re
spective places) in the morning and gather together and stay there
as their resort, О sage of good holy rites.
10. Hence the holy bath here should be particularly taken in
the morning by a person who desires to get the benefit of the holy
plunge in all the TTrthas for himself.
11. The living beings that cast off their lives inside Svargadvara,
О Brahmana, go to the supreme abode of Visnu. There is no "doubt
about it.
12. See that this is the entrance to salvation. It is conducive
to the attainment of heaven by men. Hence this excellent Tfrtha
has become famous as Svargadvara.
13. Svargadvara is exceedingly difficult of access even to the
Devas. There is no doubt about it that whatever a man desires
there, he obtains it.
14. The highest achievement lies in Svargadvara. The highest
goal lies in Svargadvara. The Japa performed, the charitable gift
offered, the Н ота done, the things seen, the penance performed
there and the meditation, the Vedic study, done there—all shall
have everlasting benefit.
15. All the sin accumulated during thousands of his previous
births perishes (completely) (the very moment) one enters Svargadvara.
16-22. Brahmanas, Ksatriyas, Vaisyas, Sudras, mixed castes,
worms, barbarians, all sorts of inferior classes of men, insects,
ants, animals and birds—that attain death in Svargadvara in due
course of time, shall become persons (equipped) with KaumodakT
(the iron-club of Visnu) in their hands. All the birds will become
the Garuda-emblemed Lords. Men will become Visnus in the splendid
city of Visnu.
Whether he has any desire or has no desire at all, if one goes
to the TTrtha Svargadvara and forsakes his life, he will be honoured
in the world of Visnu.
Sages, Deities, Siddhas, Sadhyas, Yaksas, groups of Maruts,
those who make divisions in the TTrtha (Com.) only by means of
the sacred thread (?) and the groups of Devas are present here
at midday. Hence they consider the midday bath with great re
spect.
Those who have conquered their sense-organs and observe fast
at Svargadvara and those who observe fast for a month go to the
supreme abode.
23. Those who are engaged in giving cooked rice, those who
give jewels, those men who gift plots of lands, those who distrib
ute (as gift) cows and clothes to Brahmanas—all these go to the
abode of Hari.
24. Siddhas, noble-souled sages, Pitfs—all these go to heaven
through this TTrtha. Hence this is said to be Svargadvara (‘gate
II.viii.3.25-38 159
way to Heaven’).
25. Hari himself, the Lord of Devas who has split his person
into four and sports about here (as Rama), stays happily along with
his brothers.
26. The Four-faced eternal Lord, the grandfather of the worlds,
has forsaken the world of Brahma and he sports about here along
with Devas.
27. Siva, the permanent resident of Kailasa, is also stationed
there (at Svargadvara) itself.
28. A mass of sins as huge as Meru or Mandara (mountain)
becomes completely destroyed on reaching Svargadvara.
29. The goal that is attained through perfect knowledge and
penances and the goal that is obtained by the people who perform
Yajfias, that auspicious goal is decreed for those who die in Svargadvara.
30. Svargadvara is resorted to by multitude of sages, Devas and
Asuras, engaged in Japa and Н ота and also by ascetics desirous
of salvation.
31. If in Kaliyuga anyone stays in the city of Rama, the son
of Da£aratha, even for (a period of) half a wink, he obtains that
benefit which is obtained by staying at KasT for sixty thousand
years.
32. Merely by taking the holy bath in Sarayu on Hari’s day (i.e.
the eleventh lunar day) one attains that goal which is obtained by
those endowed with Yogic practice and those who cast off their
lives in Varanasi.
33. No one who dies in Svargadvara sees hell. Blessed by KeSava
all of them attain the greatest goal.
34-38. О excellent Brahmana, this TIrtha excels all the TTrthas
(which exist) on the earth, in firmament and in heaven.
If people adopt devotion to Visnu and confidently rejoice therein,
if they restrain in accordance with their capacity their lustful ardour
for sensual objects, if they gather together all their power and
engage themselves in penance, they will never return even in
hundreds and crores of Kalpas.
Even if a learned man who stays here is killed with hundreds
of weapons, he goes to that great region. After going to that place
no one bewails.
If anyone dies in Svargadvara, he attains the greatest goal.
There is no question at all whether the period of death is during
the Northern Transit of the Sun or the Southern Transit.
160 SkandaPurana
Agastya said:
45-47. After bowing down to Visnu, the resident of Ayodhya,
Moon-god, the storehouse of nectar, was eager to witness person
ally the glory of the Tfrtha. After coming here Moon-god per
formed the pilgrimage.
Capable of performing different kinds of miraculous acts, he
propitiated Visnu in accordance with the injunctions and in the
proper order and by means of penance very difficult to perform.
He obtained his (Lord’s) favour. He installed Hari with his own
name prefixed (as 1Candra-Hari’). Therefore he (the lord) is known
as Candrahari.1
48-51. With the favour of Vasudeva that spot became a miracu
lous one. Indeed, О sage of good holy rites, that spot of Vasudeva,
the lord of all living beings, became an exceedingly secret (sa
cred) spot for^he purpose of attaining salvation.
In this (holy spot), О Brahmana, Siddhas have always observed
1. The deity called Candra-Hari was installed by Candra (v 47). Its annual festival
is celebrated on the 15th day of the bright half of Jyesfha.
Il.viii.3.52-57 161
1. According to calculation of the Solar Year this reconciles the previous statement.
Il.viii.3.68-83 163
CHAPTER FOUR
Agastya said:
1. From the holy spot of Candrahari in the south-eastern direc
tion, there is the deity by name Dharmahari1 who is the destroyer
of the sins of Kali Age.
2. Formerly a Brahmana named Dharma who was conversant
with the principles of the Vedas and Vedangas and who scrupu
lously adhered to his duties, came here on a pilgrimage.
3. After arriving he conducted an extensive pilgrimage with
great respect here. He was surprised on noticing the matchless
glory of Ayodhya.
4. Lifting up his arms, the Brahmana proclaimed joyously: “ Oh!
How very beautiful is this TTrtha! Oh! How excellent is its glory!
5. No other city like Ayodhya is seen. Being always stationed
on the Discus of Visnu, it never touches the earth.
6. As Hari Himself is stationed in it, with which (city) can it
be compared? Oh! All the TTrthas (here) are the bestowers of the
I. This deity is to the south-east of Candra-Hari. It got its name from its founder
(installer) Brahmana Dharjna who propitiated Vi$nu and was allowed to prefix his
name to Visnu's idol. Its annual festival is celebrated on the eleventh day of the
bright half of A$adha.
II.viii.4.7-17 165
world of Visnu.
7. Oh, Visnu! Oh, TTrtha! Oh, great city of Ayodhya! Oh,
matchless glory! Which one stationed here is not worthy of praise?
Everything hereof is extremely praiseworthy.”
8-9. After saying this, Dharma was overwhelmed with raptur
ous delight and danced there in various ways after observing par
ticularly the glory of Ayodhya.
On seeing Dharma dancing thus the yellow-robed Lord Hari
who became kind and compassionate, manifested himself before
him. Dharma bowed down to Hari and eulogized him with great
respect.
Dharma said:
10. Obeisance to the Lord residing in the Ocean of Milk. Bow
to the Lord lying on a couch (of Sesa). Obeisance to Visnu whose
divine feet are touched by Sankara.
11. Obeisance to the Lord whose excellent feet are devoutly
worshipped. Hail to you, the favourite one of Aja (Brahma) and
others! Repeated obeisance to Madhava of splendid limbs and
excellent eyes.
12. Obeisance to the Lord with lotus-like feet; to the lotus-
navelled one; obeisance to the $arhga-bearing one whose body is
touched by the waves of the Ocean of Milk.
13. Ош, salute to the Lord having Yogic Slumber; to the Lord
whose Atman is meditated upon by leading Yogins. Repeated
obeisance to the Lord seated on Garuda, and to Govinda.
14. Obeisance, obeisance to Sridhara who has excellent tresses,
nose and forehead; to the discus-bearing Lord who has good robes
and good complexion.
15. Obeisance to you with good mighty arms. Bow to you
having fascinating shanks. (Hail) to the Lord having good resi
dence and learning; (obeisance) to the exceedingly divine mace
bearing Lord.
16. Obeisance, obeisance to Ke£ava, the quiescent one, to Vamana.
Obeisance to you fond of Dharma; to the Lord having yellow
robes.
Agastya said:
17. On being eulogized thus by Dharma, the liberal-minded
166 Skanda Purana
Hrslke£a, the delighted Lord of Sri, the Lord of the universe joy
ously spoke to Dharma, these words:
Dharma said:
20. О Lord, if you are pleased, О Lord of Devas, О Lord of
the universe, I shall install you (here) with my name (prefixed),
О Sire of the universe.
Agastya said:
21. After saying “Let it be so”, the Lord became Dharmahari.
Merely by remembering Lord Dharmahari a man becomes liber
ated.
22. The devotee should take his bath in the waters of Sarayu
with his mind full of pious thoughts and witness Lord Dharmahari.
He shall then be liberated from all sins.
23. The rites of charitable gifts, Н ота, Japa and the feeding
of Brahmanas performed here shall become infinite in benefit and
are conducive to the attainment of residence in the world of Visnu.
24. In case any evil has been committed knowingly or unknow
ingly, expiatory rites should be performed scrupulously for dispel
ling it.
25. By the due performance of the expiatory rite his sin per
ishes. Hence expiatory rites must be performed here in accordance
with the injunctions.
26. If there is any break or omission of the daily routine of
religious rites knowingly or unknowingly, or on account of being
restrained by the king or others, in case a man is under duress,
the expiatory rites should be performed by him with great care.
27. Here Lord Visnu himself resides with great love. Hence the
greatness (of this) cannot be described by human beings.
II.viii.4.28-40 167
28. On the eleventh day in the bright half of Asadha, his annual
festival is to be celebrated in accordance with the injunctions, О
excellent Brahmana.
29. By taking the holy bath in Svargadvara and by visiting Lord
Dharmahari, the devotee shall be rid of all his sins and shall
always dwell in the world of Visnu.
30. To the south of this is an excellent mine of gold.1 It was
here that Kubera caused a great downpour of gold because he
became afraid of Raghu.
Vyasa said:
3 1 .0 illustrious one, О knower of truth, tell me how the shower
of gold took place? Why was Kubera frightened of King Raghu?
32. Narrate all this in detail, О (sage) of good holy rites. By
listening to the (holy) tales and (divine) secrets my mind is not
satiated.
Agastya said:
33. Listen, О Brahmana, I shall tell you about the excellent
origin of the gold. Hearing about it (i.e. the showering) causes
great surprise to people.
34. Formerly there was a king (named) Raghu who caused the
race of lksvaku to flourish. He administered the entire world with
excellent vigour and prowess of his own arms.
35-40. By means of his exalted prowess he had harassed his
enemies who then (sang songs of) praise of his good reputation.
As he protected his subjects very well and justly, his spotlessly
pure glory spread in all the ten quarters.
By means of his conquests he accumulated a great lot of riches.
He invaded different countries with fully equipped four divisions
of his army. He won over all living beings and levied taxes and
tributes through the threat of punishment.
The heroic king subjugated great kings with power and influ
ence. Then he seized from them different kinds of precious stones.
1. The place where Kubera showered gold for Raghu is called ‘Svarpa-khani’.
That is to the south of Dharma-Hari. The story of sage Kautsa and his donor King
Raghu is given in w . 31-71. This generosity of King Raghu is beautifully described
by Kalidisa in Raghuvamia.
168 SkandaPurana
Raghu said:
45-46. О all ye sages, listen to my words. I wish to perform
a Yajna. It behoves you all to accord me permission for the same.
О excellent sages, which Yajna will be befitting me now? Ye
leading sages, ponder over this and tell me exactly.
Agastya said:
48-51. Thereupon, the king performed the Yajna called Visvadigjaya.
It was very fascinating because of the various requisites that had
been gathered together. His entire possessions were offered by him
as monetary gifts.
The sages were rendered highly delighted and contented with
different kinds of charitable gifts. With great reverence and re
spect, he gave everything he possessed to the Brahmanas.
When all of them had returned to their abodes after being duly
adored, when the kinsmen had been rendered contented and when
II.viii.4.52-60 169
the sages were duly bowed to, that king of auspicious conduct
instantaneously became resplendent like Devendra in heaven on
account of the due performance of that sacrifice.
52. In the meantime, there came a sage known as Kautsa. He
was a disciple of Sage Vi£vamitra and was the most excellent one
among those who had self-control.
53-54. He came there to sanctify that king (by making him
donate money) for the sake of the fee to be given to the preceptor.
The intelligent sage Kautsa came there to respectfully beg (the
king) for the (payment of) fee to the preceptor who had angrily
told him (Kautsa) thus when he (the preceptor) was repeatedly
requested (to specify the fee to be given to him). (Vigvamitra had
said:) “Bring me immediately fourteen crores of gold pieces. That
is my fee.” Kautsa came there to request Raghu, the ornament of
kings, who had (unfortunately) already given his entire wealth as
monetary gifts.
55-58. On seeing that he had come, Raghu, the scorcher of
enemies, got up promptly and duly worshipped him. During his
reception service, he used only earthen pots for the sake of the
holy rites.
On seeing the collection of the requisites of such a nature for
the worship, the eminent sage was dismayed. Without any joy he
abandoned the hopes of getting the amount of fee and yet he spoke
sweetly because he was an expert in making appropriate state
ments.
Kautsa said:
О king, may you be prosperous. I am now going elsewhere for
fetching the fee to be given to the preceptor. I do not intend to
request you as you have donated everything of yours as religious
gift (and yourself) lack in funds. I am, therefore, going elsewhere.
Agastya said:
59. On being told thus by the sage, Raghu, the conqueror of
enemies* cities, meditated for a short while. With his palms joined
together in reverence and humility, he spoke to him thus:
Raghu said:
60. О holy lord, kindly do stay in my palace for a day. I shall
170 SkandaPurana
seriously endeavour for the sake of getting some money for you.
Agastya said:
61. After saying these words of great liberal-mindedness, Raghu
of exalted intellect, started with a desire for conquering Kubera.
62. As he was approaching, Kubera made him delighted in mind
by conveying his oral message (regarding shower of gold) and
offered him an endless downpour of gold.
63-65. The place where the shower of gold occurred is the
excellent Svarnakhani. He pointed out to the sage the mine thus
offered by him (Kubera). Raghu dedicated that excellent mine to
him. The eminent sage of superior good qualities accepted it, but
took only what should be given to the preceptor. Everything else
he respectfully returned to the king. The delighted Kautsa, the
most excellent one among intelligent persons, granted him boons
too.
Kautsa said:
66-68. О king, may you get a veiy good son possessing all the
good qualities of your own family. This Svarnakhani shall imme
diately bestow the desired benefits on you.
There will be a great Tirtha here. It shall always dispel all sins.
By taking holy bath here and making charitable gifts men shall
obtain fortune and glory.
It is to be remembered that the annual festival should be cel
ebrated on the twelfth day in the bright half of the month of
Vai£akha. At my instance, men will obtain all the different things
desired by them.
Agastya said:
69-71. After granting boons thus to the king, Kautsa who was
delighted in his mind, set off for his own task towards the her
mitage of his preceptor eagerly.
The contented king took the remaining amount. He gave gifts
unto Brahmanas duly and protected the subjects.
Thus the Svarnakhani became celebrated on account of the
eminent sage (Kautsa).
II.viii.5.1-14 171
CHAPTER FIVE
Vydsa said:
1-2. О holy lord, tell me exactly how (and why) Sage Vi£vamitra,
on being repeatedly requested and pressed, angrily asked his own
disciple Kautsa to bring such a huge amount that was very dif
ficult to get even with the greatest endeavour. If you have any
kindness for me, narrate to me the entire episode.1
Agastya said:
3-9. О Brahmana, listen with the concentration of all sense-
organs on this story.
Once Vi£vamitra, the most excellent of all sages, endowed with
the divine vision born of knowledge, performed a very difficult
penance. He observed Vratas with great purity. Once Sage Durvasas
came there to see him. On arrival that Brahmana (Durvasas) who
was afflicted with hunger cried loudly: “I am thoroughly afflicted
with hunger. Let food be served to me. I am famished; give me
quickly hot pudding of pure milk, О Brahmana."
On hearing these words, ViSvamitra immediately (prepared the
pudding) with great effort. He took the pudding in a pot and was
about to give it to Durvasas. On seeing him rising, holding the
pudding in his hand, Durvasas who was given to play his char
acteristic (pranks), spoke these sweet word» to the sage:
“ O eminent Brahmana, wait for a moment so that I shall take
my bath and return. Stay for a moment; stay, do stay. I shall come
presently.”
After saying this, Durvasas went away to his hermitage then.
10-14. ViSvamitra, the ascetic, remained motionless like a mountain
for a thousand years in accordance with the divine reckoning. He
stood there steadfast in mind.
Sage Kautsa devoted to holy rites remained there serving him.
He was of great liberal mind, free from jealousy. Durvasas devoid
of sins came back once again, consumed the milk pudding and
CHAPTER SIX
Agastya said:
1-2. To the west of that confluence (of Sarayu and TilodakT)
is situated the holy pit called STta Kunda.1 It is well-known as the
bestower of all desired benefits, О Brahmana. By taking his holy
bath there, О Brahmana, a man is absolved of all sins. That Kunda
is made by STta herself. By the boons granted by Rama it has been
rendered highly meritorious.
This was the boon granted to SIta by Rama who was fond of
his subjects.
Ever since then that Kunda became well-known on the earth
as STtakunda. It causes great wonder to the people. By taking holy
bath in that Kunda a man shall certainly attain Rama.
8-9. If one takes the holy bath, makes charitable gifts and
particularly performs penance, if he worships Rama and STta with
scents, garlands, incense, lights and different kinds of elaborate
and luxurious offerings and services, he shall become liberated.
There is no doubt about this.
The holy bath must be performed in the month of Margaglrsa.
Thereby one will no longer stay within any womb (i.e. will be
liberated). If a man takes the holy bath at any other time, he goes
to the world of Visnu.
10. To the west of (the spot of) Lord Visnuhari,1О Brahmana,
is the Lord named Cakrahari, the bestower of all desired benefits.
11. The great power of that Cakrahari cannot be described by
men, even by the most intelligent and skilful among them, О
Brahmana.
12. To the west thereof is the meritorious shrine of Visnu well-
known by the name Harismrti. It is the bestower of the best fruit
in the form of salvation. Merely by the sight of that Lord one is
liberated from all sins.
13. By seeing these two all the sins of embodied beings—all
the sins which men commit on the earth, perish.
14. Formerly,12 when an exceedingly terrible battle was fought
between Devas and Asuras, the former were vanquished by the
1. The deities in this Mahatmya always have the suffix Hari. W 10-11 mention Cakra-
Hari as situated to the west of Vi$nu-Hari.
2. VV 14-56 explain why the deity came to be called Gupta-Hari. As usual the
scenario of the defeat of Devas, Visnu’s prayer etc. is given here. As Vi$nu secretly
performed a penance at AyodhyS for Devas, the deity became known a ‘‘Gupta-Hari”
(v 44) and the place where Visnu’s discus Sudarlana rested was called Cakra-Hari
(v 45). The annual festival is celebrated on the 11th day of the bright half of Marga!7r$a.
II. viii.6.15-26 175
Isvara said:
24. О Lord, you take (devotees) across the ocean of worldly
existence; obeisance to you, the Lord who give happiness to Suparna
(Garuda). Obeisance to Hari, the moon that dispels the intense
darkness of delusion.
25.1 resort to the sparkling lustre of the jewel of perfect knowledge,
the moonlight associated with the mind, the river that flows in the
garden of the mind full of devotion to the Lord.
26. (I resort to) the power of enthusiasm that shines playfully,
that pervades through all the three worlds and that is the initial
176 Skanda Purana
Agastya said:
38. On being eulogized thus, the Garuda-emblemed Lord, the
bestower of boons, became delighted in his mind. The compas
sionate Lord showered his nectarine glances on all the Devas. He
spoke these sweet words to the Suras who bowed down their heads
with great humility.
Agastya said:
43. After saying this to the Devas, the Garuda-vehicled Lord
vanished. He arrived at Ayodhya immediately and performed the
excellent penance.
44. Since he performed the penance after becoming hidden, for
the purpose of increasing the refulgence of Suras, the Lord became
famous by the name Guptahari.
45. (The Lord) at the place where at the outset the Discus
named Sudar$ana fell down from the hand of Hari who arrived
there is known as Cakrahari.
46-47. Merely by visiting these two one is liberated from all
sins.
By the power of Hari Devas became exceedingly refulgent.
178 SkandaPurana
They defeated all the Daityas in battle and regained their own
original positions. They assailed the Asuras and became brilliant
with excessive pleasure.
48. Then all of them gathered together immediately. With Brhaspati
at their head, all the Devas eagerly came to Ayodhya to visit Hari.
They bowed down to Hari whose lotus-like feet were adored with
the garlands from their crowns.
49-50. They arrived and listened respectfully to the different
good qualities (of the Lord that were praised in songs). They
worshipped him with meritorious feelings (of devotion). They bowed
down to Hari with hands folded respectfully and meditated on him
with full concentration of mind.
They stood there with palms joined in reverence. On seeing
them arrive and bow down, the yellow-robed Janardana, the im
manent soul of the universe, became delighted and said:
Agastya said:
70-74. After saying this, the yellow-robed Acyuta, the Lord
vanished. The Devas celebrated the festival in accordance with the
180 Skanda Purana
Vyasa said:1
76-77. О Brahmana, О ascetic, you have narrated this exceed
ingly wonderful story whereby my mind has become full of sur
prise. Tell me in detail the greatness of this.
Agastya said:
78. Listen, О eminent Brahmana, to the glory of the confluence.
It is highly surprising. It has been heard by me from Lord Skanda.
I shall recount it to you correctly.
79. I have learnt from Skanda that there are thousands and
hundreds of crores of TTrthas at the confluence of Sarayu and
Gharghara.
80. There is perpetual presence of the deities, Suras, Siddhas
and Yogins as well as Brahma, Visnu and Siva.
81-85. О Brahmana, listen with single-minded attention. I shall
tell you the benefit that one attains by taking the holy bath with
1. VV 76-116 describe the glory of Goprataraka Tirtha which is located on the
confluence of Sarayii and Gharghari or modem Ghagra (v 72). Its special month
of bath is Pau$a. The special historical (?) importance is that at the behest of R&ma,
all the citizens of AyodhyS drowned themselves in waters here and went to heaven
(v 116).
II.viii.6.86-95 181
Vyasa enquired:
117. How did the citizens of Saketa attain heaven? How did
Rama go to heaven, О learned one? О sage of good holy rites,
narrate this.
Agastya replied:
118. Listen, О sage, with attention to this detailed narrative as
to how Rama and the citizens went to heaven.'1
1. VV 118161 describe how R§ma, after instructing his closest associates like
Hanuman and Vibhl$ana, entered Sarayu finally. This Tirtha naturally came to be
known as Svargadvara ('Gateway to Heaven’).
184 Skanda Purana
with great devotion. Those living beings in the city that had al
ready vanished from sight, followed Raghava who arrived at Svargadvara.
151. All those living beings, whether mobile or immobile, that
saw Kakutstha, became inclined to go to heaven.
152. There was no living being, even the subtlest one in Ayodhya,
which did not follow Raghava who had reached Svargadvara.
153. After going half a Yojana, Rama proceeded ahead facing
the West. He saw the river SarayQ of meritorious waters.
154. At that auspicious hour, Brahma, the grandfather of the
worlds, came there to Kakutstha who had approached Svargadvara.
He (Brahma) was accompanied by all the Devas and noble-souled
sages.
155-158. All round him there were hundreds and crores of divine
aerial chariots that brightened the firmament. There was an ex
cellent fiery brilliance due to the self-luminous great persons of
meritorious activities.
Auspicious, sweet-smelling and pleasant breezes blew. There
was a splendid shower of flowers along with a gust of wind of
great velocity. At that time Sun-god also came along with Gandharvas
and Apsaras. Rama touched the waters of Sarayu with his feet.
Thereafter Brahma began to eulogize along with the Devas.
159-163. “Indeed you are the lord of the worlds. No one knows
you. But I am, О wide-eyed lord, one who has been accepted by
you before. You are the great Being unimaginable and everlasting.
О lord of great vigour, enter that body of yours which you have
wished to adopt for the purpose of sustaining the worlds.”
At the instance of the grandfather of the worlds, the lord, along
with his younger brothers, entered the exceedingly divine fiery
world of Visnu.
Thereafter the Devas worshipped the excellent one among the
Devas, adopting the form of Visnu.
Sadhyas, the groups of Maruts along with Indra with Agni as
their leader, the celestial groups of sages, Gandharvas, celestial
damsels, Suparnas, Nagas, Yaksas, Daityas, Danavas and Raksasas—
all of them realized their desires completely. Devas were highly
delighted. All of them stationed in heaven exclaimed, “ Excellent!
Excellent!”
164-170a. Then Visnu of great refulgence spoke to Brahma1: “ O
1. VV 164-175 describe the creation of a special heaven called Santanika for the
people, monkeys etc. who followed Rama in the Sarayii waters.
II.viii.6.170b-178 187
179. A learned man, whoever he may be, who take his holy
bath in Gopratara, certainly enters the greatest abode that i& dif
ficult of access even to Yogins.
180. Particularly on the KarttikT day, persons who have con
quered the sense-organs should definitely take their holy bath. О
Brahmana-sage, all the Devas including Indra come to Ayodhya
for bathing especially in Gopratara, in the month of Karttika.
181. A TTrtha on a par with Gopratara has never been there
before nor will there ever be. Even Prayagaraja (the king of all
TTrthas) comes here in the month of Karttika for the purpose of
the holy bath.
182. (Defective Text*) (On taking its holy bath here) Prayaga
becomes sinless after abandoning (i.e. absolving himself of) all
sins. His body becomes white (clean) and the garment too is white
(spotless). In the matter of purification, he will realize his desire,
О excellent sage,
183. Whatever TTrthas there are, whether in heaven or on the
earth, О sage of good holy rites, all of them stay in Gopratara in
the month of Karttika.
184-185. Japa, Нота, holy bath and charitable gift according
to one’s capacity in the Gopratara TTrtha yield infinite bliss. With
faith and holy vow and observances all the TTrthas go over to
Gopratara in Karttika with the wish ‘Let us go to Gopratara in
order to dispose of our sins.’
186. The holy bath undertaken in Gopratara is destructive of
all sins. By taking the holy bath in Gopratara and by visiting Lord
Guptahari, one is rid of all sins. There is no doubt about this.
187. After taking the holy bath the worship of Brahmanas with
Visnu in view (i.e. regarding them as Visnu) should be particularly
performed by persons endowed with faith as well as by those of
controlled holy rites.
188. A milch cow should be given to a Brahmana well-versed
in Vedic knowledge. The cow should be adorned according to
one’s capacity. The Brahmana should be very pure. He must observe
holy rites regularly. She (i.e. the cow) shall be given by one who
has controlled himself for the purpose of propitiating Visnu.
CHAPTER SEVEN
Agastya said:
1. I shall describe another TTrtha which is known as Kslrodaka.1
This TTrtha is fascinating on account of its good qualities. It is
situated to the north-west of STtakunda. It is the abode of the mass
of merits. It is destructive of all miseries.
2. It is at this place that formerly King Da£aratha performed
a sacrifice named Putresti. It was for the sake of a son that he
performed the Yajna with great faith in accordance with the in
junctions.
3. With great pleasure, he concluded the sacrifice wherein
monetary gifts were profusely and liberally distributed. At the
close of the Yajna Kratubhuk (i.e. the Lord who accepts the of
ferings in sacrifice) appeared in an embodied form.
4. In his hand he held a gold vessel of great excellence filled
with Havis. The excellent Vaisnava refulgence had been mixed
with that Havis. The king divided it into four parts and gave them
to his wives.
5. The place where the milk which was very difficult to get
was obtained, has become well-known as Kslrodaka. It is destruc
tive of all sins. It became manifest with water (watery form). It
is excellent and is a bestower of benefits.
6. By taking a holy bath there with great reverence, a wise
man who has conquered his sense-organs, obtains all his desires
and gets famous sons.
7-8. On the eleventh day in the bright half of the month of
Alvina, one should successfully perform the holy rite. He shall
take his holy bath in accordance with the injunctions and offer
charitable gifts to a Brahmana according to his capacity. By per
forming the worship of Visnu duly as prescribed, he shall realize
all his desires. He shall obtain sons too. Know that the man will
duly obtain religious merits too.
1. VV 1-8 describe the TTrtha Kslrodaka on the north-west of STta Kun4a. Dafaratha
performed the Putra-Kame^i sacrifice here and got a gold vessel full of milk from
Fire-god. Hence the name Kslrodaka. The special day for this TTrtha is the 11th day
in the bright half of Ativina.
192 Skan da P u rd n a
1. VV 31-68 describe the TTrtha called Dhana-Yaksa. Its special day is the 14th
day in the dark half of Magha.
194 Skanda P u ra n a
Visvamitra said:
39-40. Choose your boon, О (Yaksa) conversant with Dharma,
without any greed. Do it quickly. О intelligent one, I am particu
larly delighted with your great devotion.
Yaksa said:
О excellent Brahmana, if you wish to grant me a boon as desired
by me, then О great sage, О Brahmana-sage, be pleased to render
my body sweet-smelling. It has become obnoxious in odour due
to the curse of the king.
Agastya said:
41-43. When the Yaksa spoke thus, the sage closed his eyes in
meditation. He discerned him to be one deserving this on account
of his great devotion. He bathed him with the Tfrtha water duly
after respectfully performing the rite of Sahkalpa. Within a mo
ment he became one whose body was rendered very fragrant.
Having become transformed like that, the intelligent Yaksa stood
in front of him bowing down his head with humility. He spoke
these sweet words with palms joined in reverence:
Yaksa said:
44-46. Thanks to your mercifulness. I have become possessor
of a fragrant body, О clever sage. Do something so that this holy
spot may be well-known, О omniscient one. О Brahmana-sage, do
ll.vni.7.47-60 195
Agastya said:
On being told thus, the sage thought for a short while with
closed and motionless eyes. Being delighted with the Yaksa, he
spoke to him in a gentle tone:
Visvamitra said:
47. О Yaksa, this holy spot will attain matchless renown. This
TTrtha will become well-known as Dhanayaksa.
48. It will bestow bodily beauty. It will instil faith and con
fidence. By taking the holy bath in accordance with the injunction
(here), one will get rid of foul smell. Holy bath here should be
carefully taken by those who are desirous of merit.
49-50. Charitable gift should be given as per one’s faith as well
as financial capacity. Worship of LaksmT should be particularly
performed. By means of holy bath and charitable gift (one should
strive) for the propitiation of LaksmT in particular. О Yaksa of
good holy rites, by the worship of the nine Nidhis (Treasures) too
(this shall be achieved). He will enjoy happiness in this world and
rejoice in the other world.
51-57. These are the nine Nidhis: Mahdpadma, Padma, Sankha,
Makara, Kacchapa, Mukunda, Kunda, Nila and Kharva.
О sinless one, these Nidhis will also be present in this Kunda.
A special worship of these yields much benefit. The worship of
Goddess LaksmT and of the Nidhis should be performed in the
middle of water. Many kinds of cooked rice and different kinds
of clothes should be given. Gold etc. should be given according
to one’s capacity, but one should not be too miserly in spending
money for this purpose. The charitable gift should be distributed
scrupulously and secretly. Fruits and gold pieces should be given
in particular. The holy bath taken on the fourteenth day in the dark
half (of the month) yields much benefit. It should be performed
with more intense faith by persons endowed with great faith.
58-60. The annual festival is to be celebrated on the fourteenth
day in the dark half of the month of Magha. Holy bath should
be taken and libations to the Manes must be particularly offered.
The devotee should say like this: “ May the universe including
Brahma at the top and a blade of grass at the bottom be pleased”.
196 Skanda P u ran a
66-68. After granting him boons like this, Vi£vamitra, the great
sage, a storehouse of penance, vanished then.
Ever since then, that holy spot attained great fame. The entire
ground of that holy spot is made of gold. It is studded with plenty
of divine jewels. It is rendered splendid all round. О learned one,
he who does like this attains the greatest goal.
69. To the north of Dhanayaksa, О Brahmana, is situated the
well-known Vasistha Kunda1that is destructive of all sins always.
70. Vasistha, the excellent storehouse of penance, resides there
always. Arundhatl, of pure holy rites, is always near him.
71. If any intelligent man of great purity takes holy bath there
especially along with offering Sraddha, his merit is very excellent.
72. Vamadeva too is present there, О sinless one. Vasistha
and Vamadeva are to be worshipped with great care.
73. Arundhatl, the chaste lady, is to be specially worshipped.
Holy bath must be taken duly and charitable gift must be made
according to one’s capacity.
74. There is no doubt about this that he will obtain all the
1. VV 69-76 describe Vasistha Kunda which lies to the north of the above Kunda.
Its annual festival is celebrated on the Sth day in the bright half of Bhadrapada.
II.viii.7.75-85 197
desired benefits. He who takes holy bath here, shall become equal
to Vasistha.
75. The annual festival is to be celebrated on the fifth day in
the bright half of the month of Bhadrapada by a person with self-
control as his Vrata. The festival should be celebrated in accor
dance with the procedure.
76. The worship of Visnu should be performed here scrupu
lously and faithfully. He (i.e. the worshipper) shall be rid of all
sins and be sanctified and honoured in the world of Visnu.
77. Stationed to the west of Vasisthakunda, О eminent Brahmana,
is the well-reputed Sagara Kunda1, the bestower of all desires,
good things and accomplishments. By taking the holy bath here
and by making charitable gifts one shall obtain all desires.
78. One who takes holy bath here on Parvan days, shall attain
that imperishable merit which one attains through the holy bath
in the sea on a full-moon day.
79. Hence holy bath must be taken here in accordance with
the injunctions by those who desire a son. The special holy bath
should be taken on the full-moon day in the month of Alvina.
80. A man who does like this, О learned one, is liberated from
all sins. By taking the holy bath here and by making charitable
gifts according to one's capacity, a man shall go to heaven.
81. To the south-west of Sagara is situated the excellent YoginT
Kunda where the sixty-four YoginTs stationed in the waters are
present.
82. They are the bestowers of all objects on men and on
women in particular. All of them accord the greatest Siddhis; they
bestow all desires and benefits.
83. Holy bath should be carefully and particularly taken by
men for propitiation of the YoginTs on the eighth day in the bright
half of the month of ASvina.
84. Holy bath and charitable gifts—all shall be fruitful here. Yaksinls
and others can be won over here. There is no doubt about it.
85. To the east of YoginTkunda is the excellent Urva£Tkunda12.
1. To the west of Vasistha Kunda is Sagara Kunda (vv 77-80) and to the south
west of it lies YoginT Kuncja (vv 81-84).
2. VV 8S-107 give an interesting story about how the celestial damsel UrvaST
approached Sage Raibhya (different from Sage Raibhya of Mbh) to disturb his
penance and was cursed to be ugly. Her beauty was restored at what is known as
Urvafi Kunda. Her annual festival is celebrated on the 3rd day of the bright half
of Bhidrapada.
198 Skanda P u ran a
A man who takes his holy bath here, О learned one, shall attain
UrvaST in heaven.
86-87. Formerly, it is said, a clever sage named Raibhya, an
ascetic, performed a great penance on the slopes of Himavan,
abstaining from food and curbing his sense-organs. On seeing the
elaborate penance the Lord of Suras became frightened. Zealously
he despatched Urva£T for causing obstacles in his penance.
88. On being sent by him, that lady with stately, elephent-like
gait stayed near the excellent hermitage of Raibhya on the slopes
of Himavan.
89-90. She (sported about) among the bowers of creepers and
bushes of full-blown flowers in the forest, where birds chirped
sweetly, where deer stood motionless on hearing the songs play
fully sung by KinnarTs and which had golden colour on account
of the filaments and blossoms shaken and separated from Punnaga
(Calophyllum inophyllum), Kesara (Rottleria tinctoria) and A£oka.
It appeared as though a second Meru mountain had been created
by Brahma. There Urvagl shone like a receptacle of all the splendour
that the Lord of Love with the flowery bow possessed.
91. She was (as it were) a nectarine river of very extra-or
dinary beauty.
92. She appeared to be shining with the lustre of white pearls
on account of the excellent complexion and refulgence of her
limbs. She was embellished with youthful sweetness and youth.
93-98. As she turned her gaze backwards, her side-glances shed
forth white lustre. With this she made her lips resemble fresh
sprouts. A bunch of mango blossoms wherein bees were humming
was hanging from each of her ears. She was (on the whole) like
a Parijata creeper growing out of divine nectar. Her waist was
slender. She had broad hips and fully developed breasts. Her com
plexion was fair. She was as though a spear (in the hands) of the
god of Love who had sharpened his arrows on a whetstone.
The sage saw that lady of large eyes within that hermitage. It
appeared that in order to deceive the Three-eyed Lord the god of
Love who had been burned in the fire of the eye (of Siva) had
created the physical form of a maiden. On seeing that large-eyed
lady who had tucked a creeper of the hermitage into her girdle
and the flowers thereof into her ear-rings, the sense-organs of the
sage became stirred and excited. He became extremely furious.
Blazing with anger he cursed her.
II.viii.7.99-110 199
Raibhya said:
99. Become exceedingly ugly, О woman, too proud of your
beauty. It is for the purpose of causing obstacles in my penance
that you have come near me.
Agastya said:
100. On being cursed thus angrily by that sage that woman of
splendid eyes joined her palms in reverence and spoke to the sage
respectfully:
Urvafx said:
101. О holy lord, be pleased with me because I had been only
a tool in the hands of others, fully dependent upon them. О sage
of steady vows, how can I get redemption from your curse?
Raibhya said:
102-103. In Ayodhya there is an extremely great and holy Tirtha.
Do take your holy bath therein and regain your great beauty.
Certainly that TTrtha will acquire fame after your name.
Agastya said:
104-107. At the instance of that Brahmana, she performed everything
with great faith. She became a beautiful woman once again im
mediately. That holy spot became very famous.
If any person duly takes holy bath here, О excellent sage, he/
she will acquire great charm and beauty. There is no doubt about
it.
The annual festival shall be on the third day in the bright half
of the month of Bhadrapada.Visnu should be worshipped by the
people here for the attainment of all desired objects.
A learned man who does like this shall always live in the world
of Visnu. The man or the woman shall attain all desires.
108-110. To the south of Urva^Tkunda, О tiger among sages,
is Ghosarka Kunda1, a great Tirtha that destroys all the sins for
I. VV 108-139 describe how (the mythical) King Ghosa was cured of his fes
tering wound by his bath in this Tirtha and he installed Sun-god here, bearing the
joint name of himself and Sun-god (Ghosarka).
200 Skanda P u ran a
ever. By taking the holy bath here and making charitable gifts one
is honoured in the world of Sun. There is no other Tirtha any
where on a par with this Tirtha.
A man with festering sores and wounds, an impoverished per
son, a leper or one overwhelmed with misery shall attain all desires,
if he takes the holy bath duly.
111-113a. The holy bath should with faith be performed par
ticularly on Sundays. If desirous of going to the world of Sun-god,
a holy bath should be performed on the sixth day in the bright
half of the month of Bhadrapada or Magha. The bath should be
taken duly and carefully. The holy bath in the month of Pausa,
particularly on Sundays, is highly beneficial. The holy bath on the
seventh day coinciding with a Sunday, is excessively beneficial.
113b-l 15. Formerly there was a king in the solar race named
Ghosa. He was the sole emperor of the entire earth girdled by the
ocean. Due to his fame the spheres of the three worlds shone
brilliantly. Remarkably refulgent due to his valour he appeared
like another Sun. He had vanquished hordes of enemies by means
of his powerful brawny arms.
116-121. Once that ruler entrusted the ministers with the ad
ministration of the earth. Interested in hunting, he wandered in the
forest where many trees had grown thickly together. Though that
king was handsome, yet his lotus-like hands became infested with
worms due to the sins of the previous births indicating inauspi
ciousness. He was devoid of all pride. He happened to be hunting
alone. Once while he wandered about here and there in the forest
killing deer, boars and lions, he became oppressed with thirst. His
body became utterly tired and emaciated. In front of him, the king
saw a lake and sages engaged in taking holy bath and saying the
Sandhya prayers etc. Thereupon, the king duly performed the Acamana
rite and took the holy bath. Presently he assumed a divine body.
His mind was filled with delight and free from impurities. He
knew from the sages that it was a Tirtha. He then recited the
prayer pleasing to Sun.
Agastya said:
129. Even as he said thus Sun-god became himself pleased
with the king. With a desire to do something pleasing to his devotee
(Sun-god) promptly appeared before him. As the king bowed down
his head with humility, he spoke these sweet words:
Sun-god said:
130. О great king, choose a boon. I am pleased with you. Here
I am in front of you. I shall grant you the boon that is mentally
desired by you.
Sun said:
132-135. Let it be so, О lord of men. Your desire is a fasci
nating one. I will be pleased with those men who read this prayer
composed and recited by you. О king, I shall give them all that
they desire. This holy spot will become extremely renowned in the
world after your name. One who takes the holy bath here, obtains
all desires. The holy bath here shall always be undertaken by a
devotee of mine. Whatever he desires he shall obtain it.
Agastya said:
136. After granting this boon, the lord who was endowed with
great compassion, Sun-god with a thousand rays, vanished.
137. The king installed an idol of Sun-god, that issued forth
from the disc of the Sun. He himself worshipped that excellent
idol.
138. That Kunda became well-known as Ghosarkakunda after
the name of the king. By taking holy bath there a man shall shine
and reside in the world of Sun always.
139. Thus, in accordance with the good injunctions the devotee
should worship the idol of Sun with great devotion, free from
impurities and with great respect. At the outset he shall take his
holy bath in the nectarine'Kunda. (Thereby) he shall attain wide
reputation free from impurities. He shall reside in the world of
Sun.
CHAPTER EIGHT
Agastya said:
1-6. To the west of GhosarkatTrtha, О Brahmana-sage, is situ
ated a TIrtha well-known as Rati Kunda.1It is destructive of all
sins always. By taking holy bath here and by making charitable
gifts, one shall attain excellent splendour.
1. VV М 2 describe Rati Kunda and Kusumiyudha Kunda which lie to the west
of Ghosarka Tirtha. Its special day is the Sth day in the bright half of iftagha (known
as Vasanta-PaflcamI).
II.viii.8.7-18 203
going back to heaven. Where the Lord who had conquered the
sense-organs took his bath, he installed a Linga well-known
MantreSvara.
To the north of it there is a beautiful lake adorned with lilies
and blue lotuses. Taking holy bath there and making charitable
gifts bestows various benefits. It is very excellent.
The annual festival is to be celebrated on the fourteenth day
in the bright half of the month of Caitra. By taking the holy bath,
by making charitable gifts and by worshipping Brahmanas, one
attains infinite bliss in heaven. There is no doubt about this.
19-2la. The greatness of Mantresvara cannot be adequately
described by anyone, О Brahmana. The Lord is the bestower of
excellent benefit. A Linga on par with Mantresvara has never
existed before nor will there be another.
The deity should be worshipped carefully by means of fragrant
flowers, incense etc., unguents and other things. It is the bestower
of all desired objects. If everything is performed thus, undoutbtedly,
salvation is within his reach.
21b-22. To the north of this, О sinless one, is the Goddess
Sltala1stationed. By worshipping that goddess a learned man is
liberated from all sins. The goddess can be worshipped always but
particularly on Mondays the worship is to be performed by men
with great care for the attainment of all objects.
23. When there is fear of the outbreak of smallpox etc. her
worship is to be performed by men. It is destructive of the eruption
of the disease etc.
24-28. There itself, to the north of it, is the goddess well-known
as Band?. Merely by remembering her, one is rid of the fear of
being fettered.
Those who are bound with chains by an infuriated king, shall
become liberated instantaneously on remembering Goddess BandT.
A festival should be celebrated in her honour strenuously by
men particularly on Tuesdays. It bestows all desired objects.
She is to be ardently and carefully worshipped by means of
perfumes, flowers, incenses, lights and food offerings of various
kinds, О sage of holy rites. In order to propitiate Band!, О ex-1
1. There are minor sacred spots and deities described like $Itala, the deity of
Smallpox (vv 2 lb-23), BandT, the releaser of prisoners (vv 24-28), CudakT (vv 29-
37), MahSratna (vv 35-37), Durbhara and Mahabhara (vv 38-47).
Il.viii.8.29-42 205
infinite benefit.
58. О Brahmana, О sage of auspicious rites, a man who goes
there during the nine days in the bright half of the month of
A£vina is liberated from all sins.
59-65. After conquering Ravana who had made the worlds cry
aloud, the leading scion of the family of Raghu returned in the
company of STta and Laksmana. In order to receive Rama, Bharata
went to this place on foot. Endowed with good fortune and ac
companied by his followers (Bharata) had halted here.
The divine cow appeared there with milk flowing from her
udders in profuse quantity. On seeing the milk falling on the
ground, the monkeys and the Raksasas were struck with wonder.
They asked Rama (the lord of) mobile and immobile beings: “ O
great king, what is this?” The great scion of the family of Raghu
said to them: “ Vasistha knows everything. We shall ask that sage.”
On being told thus, all of them with the king as their leader, stood
in front of Vasistha and asked him with palms joined in reverence.
Vasistha meditated for a short while. Addressing Rama in front
of all, the sage said to him calmly:
Vasistha said:
66-68. Listen, О mighty Rama. This is the auspicious Kamadhenu.
Out of affection for you, she has come down here with milk
flowing from her udders.
In the middle of the flowing milk Rudra has come up. He has
come to see you, the excellent (warrior) who have conquered the
enemy and who have fulfilled the task of Devas. Worship him
quickly near this Kunda. Without any delay worship this auspi
cious Siva ardently. In this Kslrakunda he is the holy deity well-
known as DugdheSvara.
Agastya said:
69. Then the glorious scion of the family of Raghu worshipped
that Linga, known as Dugdhe€vara, in accordance with the injunc
tions of Vasistha.
70-73. Since that Kunda where the milk flowed, was honoured
by STta, that Kunda attained a matchless reputation as ‘STtakunda’
from that time onwards.
208 Skanda P u ran a
Men who take their holy bath in STtakunda and visit Lord
DugdheSvara are liberated from all sins. There is no doubt about
this. Holy bath taken, Japa, Н ота performed and charitable gifts
offered here shall bestow infinite merit.
By worshipping STta and Rama at STtakunda along with Laksmana
and by worshipping DugdheSvara one shall attain all desires. The
annual festival is to be celebrated on the fourteenth day in the
month of Jyestha.
74-78. One who is very righteous and merciful and performs
the rites like this duly, goes to the greatest abode, after reaching
which one does not become grief-stricken.
There on the eastern side is the great Tirtha of Taponidhi (‘Storehouse
of penance’) made by Sugrlva. It is an auspicious TTrtha that is
situated nearby. One who takes the holy bath there, makes chari
table gifts and carefully worships Rama, shall attain all desires on
that very day.
To the west of it is the holy spot Hanumatkunda. To the west
of it, О Brahmana, is the splendid lake named VibhTsana Saras.
By taking a holy bath in both of them, by making charitable gifts
and by worshipping Rama there itself in accordance with the injunctions,
one obtains (fulfilment of) all desires.
This is that extremely pure Ayodhya. It is known as Dharmanidhi
(‘Storehouse of piety’).
Vasistha said:
82. May all the sages listen to the wonderful glory of Ayodhya1.
On listening to it, one is rid of all sins. There is no doubt about
it.
* All the verses from v 71 sitakunde narah snatva “Men who take their bath in
STtakunda" up to this verse constitute presumably Vasistha’s speech.
1. After describing minor Tirthas, the author stresses the importance of Ayodhya
and outlines the pilgrimage to Ayodhya in vv 82*116.
II.viii.8.83-97 209
should himself take his food. On the next day the devotee endowed
with great faith, should get up (early in the morning) and visit
RukminT Tirtha and other TIrthas in the proper order. In the different
places the man should take his holy bath and make charitable gifts
according to his capacity. Then he should worship Visnu carefully.
He shall be free from mental, verbal and physical impurities. Thus,
with the self fully controlled, the devotee of pure holy rites should
conclude his pilgrimage successfully. If at any place he may happen
to die (during the performance of pilgrimage) he shall attain the
great salvation.
Agastya said:
115-116. After listening to these words spoken by Vasistha thus
those Raksasas and others with VibhTsana as their leader per
formed everything in accordance with the injunctions. Then they
became free from impurities.
Thus the (Monkeys etc.) with Sugriva as their chief performed
the pilgrimage in accordance with the detailed injunctions. They
acquired plenty of merit. Due to their endeavour to go back to
heaven all the dirt in their bodies vanished. They attained excel
lent bodies. All or them attained the full complement of good
qualities.
CHAPTER NINE
Agastya said:
1. To the south-east of Jatakunda is situated the great TTrtha
well-known as Gayakupa. It bestows everything desired.
* This chapter gives succinctly the importance of remaining Tirthas such as Gaya
Kupa (vv 1-11), Pi£2camocana (vv 12* 14), MSnasa (vv 15-18), the river TamasS (and
traditional yet fine description of its natural beauty) and the hermitage of Mandavya
(vv 19-38), SIta Kunda, Bhairava, Bharata (and his residence at Nandigrama) (vv
46-54), Jaffi Kun^a where R2ma and Lak^ma^a got their matted hair removed (vv
55-58). The annual festival thereof is celebrated on the 14th day in the dark half
of Caitra.
212 Skanda P u ra n a
day in the bright half of the month of Bhadrapada. For the purpose
of attaining all desired objects, VighneSvara is to be worshipped.
All obstacles will be destroyed merely by remembering him.
41. To the south of it is the deity named Bhairava, on seeing
whom one is absolved of all sins. There is no doubt about it.
42-44. He is protected by Vasudeva and kept there honourably
for the sake of guarding the holy spot. His worship should be
performed duly and with great effort. By showing great reverence
to Bhairava, one will obtain all the benefits desired mentally.
The annual festival is to be celebrated on the eighth day in the
dark half of the month of Marga£Trsa there for the purpose of
attaining all desired objects. Worship along with the offering of
an animal should be performed by people. There is no doubt about
this that they will attain all desired objects.
45. It is with the favour of Bhairava that the residence in a
TTrtha is free from obstacles. Hence his worship must be per
formed with great care.
46. To the north of this is the beautiful Bharatakunda. By
taking holy bath here a man is liberated from all sins. There is
no doubt about it.
47-53. The holy bath performed and charitable gift offered there
shall have infinite benefit. Different kinds of cooked rice should
be given. So also different kinds of clothes. The deities are to be
worshipped with great care by means of ornaments, clothes etc.
Formerly Bharata, the scion of the family of Raghu, the pure soul
with fully conquered sense-organs, stayed in Nandigrama* and
meditated upon Ramacandra. Seated there alone, he, dear to the
earth, protected all the subjects.
The king named Bharata made a big Kunda. After installing
Rama’s image, that prince of subdued sense-organs performed (the
worship). There is a great merit in that Kunda. It is associated with
various meritorious activities. There are various flowers such as
lilies, blue lotuses, white lotuses and red lotuses. It shines with
various birds such as swans, Sarasa ducks, and ruddy geese. It is
very pure with plenty of shade from the trees of the garden. The
holy bath taken there is highly meritorious. It is devoid of impu
rities and is full of gaiety and bliss. If the devotee performs holy
£raddha rites and bath with the Pitrs in view, the Pitrs become
pleased with him. All the deities will be pleased with him.
Mod. Nundgaon close to Bharata Kuncfa, 8 miles from Fyzabad (De 138).
216 S kan da P u ra n a
CHAPTER TEN
Pilgrimage to Ayodhya
Agastya said:1
1-2. The devotee should worship Ajita (Visnu) by abstaining
from food or taking in only milk. Siddhi (spiritual achievement)
comes within his hands (power).
The great festival should be celebrated with vocal and instru
mental music. An intelligent devotee who does like this and performs
the rites in this manner, shall attain all desires.
3-6. To the north of this is the auspicious TIrtha of VTra, the
great elephant in rut, О sage regularly performing holy rites.
After taking the holy bath, the devotee should stay there in
front of it determinedly. He attains the complete Siddhi on re
alizing which he does not bemoan or regret.
VTra (Hero, the elephant deity here) is the defender of Ayodhya
and bestower of all desired objects. The annual festival shall be
37. After saying thus the Pot-born Sage stopped. Then Vyasa,
Krsna-Dvaipayana, the ascetic, said once again:
38. “The detailed story in the proper order is not accessible
to all the living beings. I have heard the procedure (and the proper
order) from the men who come from there.
39. Now I wish to hear about the places of pilgrimage in
accordance with the injunctions. О excellent sage, I wish to hear
the proper order and procedure of the pilgrimage clearly from you,
О ascetic.
40. Even as I ask you for it, describe the benefit in detail and
in due order, О learned one, О most excellent one among merciful
person, if you have any pity for me.
41. О sage observing regular vows, the most excellent one
among those who know the entire universe, do it so that with your
favour I can also undertake the pilgrimage.”
Agastya said:
42-43. Listen. I shall describe accurately the procedure for the
pilgrimage, from the beginning, to Ayodhya and to the seven
TTrthas in the proper manner and in due order. A pilgrim must be
pure mentally, verbally and physically. His conscience must be
free from impurities. With the sense-organs under control, he should
take the holy baths in the Manasa (Mental) TTrthas. He who performs
the rite perfectly well like this, attains the merit of visiting the
TTrtha.
Vyasa said:
44. О ascetic, recount the Manasa TTrthas where the mind of
220 Skanda Purana
Agastya said:
45. О sinless one, listen as I narrate to you the Mental TTrthas,
by taking a proper bath in which a man attains the highest goal.
46-47. They are: Satyatirtha (Truthfulness), Ksamatirtha (For
bearance), Indriya-nigraha (Restraint of the sense-organs), Sarva-
Bhuta-daya Tirtha (Mercifulness to all living beings), the most
excellent Tirtha of Satyavdditd (Speaking the truth), Jhdnatirtha
(Knowledge) and Tapastlrtha (Penance). Thus the seven TTrthas
have been recounted. The mind will become pure in the Tirtha of
mercifulness to all living beings.
48. Purification of the body alone by means of water is not
implied by the word Snana (holy bath). If the mind of a man is
pure he is said to have (really) taken Snana.
Listen to the criterion for the meritoriousness of the terrestrial
TTrthas.
49. Just as some parts of the body are known as excellent,
middling etc. so also there are some places on the earth that are
proclaimed as exceedingly meritorious.
50. Therefore, one should have his stay in the terrestiral TTrthas
as well as mental TTrthas., He who takes his holy bath in both,
attains the greatest goal.
51. Hence you too, О leading Brahmana, undertake the pil
grimage with a pure conscience. Adopt it with great effort. (But)
the pilgrimage has not yet been described by me. О eminent
Brahmana, I shall describe the procedure for the pilgrimage in due
order.
52. Aquatic beings are bom in waters and they die in waters.
They are impure in mind. They do not become free from impu
rities. They do not go to heaven.
53. Unceasing attachment to the objects of sensuous pleasures
is called the dirt or impurity of the mind. If the mind refrains from
coming into close contact with them, it is called its freedom from
impurities.
54. If the mind is internally defiled, holy bath in a TTrtha does
not purify one. A liquor pot is unholy even if it is washed with
water hundreds of times.
55. Charitable gifts, sacrifice, penance, cleanliness, pilgrim
Il.v iii. 10.56-69 221
does not return (to the earth), if one performs regularly the pil
grimage that bestows auspicious benefits.
70. Hence you too, О eminent Brahmana, go to Ayodhya. Do
not delay. After going there undertake the pilgrimage with perfect
restraint on the sense-organs.
71. Ayodhya is the greatest holy place. Ayodhya is exceed
ingly great. No other city like Ayodhya is seen.
72-73. Ayodhya is the greatest holy place established on the
discus of Visnu. Thus what was asked by you has been recounted,
О Brahmana, by me. Resort, О sage, to that and allow me (to
proceed) from here.
Siita said:
74. After saying these things when the Pot-born Sage stopped,
Vyasa, the storehouse of penance, spoke these sweet words:
Vyasa said:
75-76. I am blessed. I am contented, О sage, I have done my
duty. Truthfulness, cleanliness, learning, good conduct, forbear
ance, straightforwardness—all these are in vain if one does not go
to Ayodhya. Since you who were pleased with me have pronounced
the right judgement, I shall go to the pure city of Ayodhya even
now. О great Brahmana, you too do go back to your own hermit
age.
Suta said:1
77-78. After describing the excellent procedure for the pilgrim
age in due order, the pot-born sage, Agastya, the mass of penance,
went to his penance-grove. The intelligent mass of splendour,
Vyasa, who had conquered his sense-organs, went to Ayodhya
with his eyes beaming with surprise and pleasure like a lotus in
full bloom. The Brahmana went to Ayodhya for the purpose of
attaining all desired objects.
79-82. After proceeding to Ayodhya he performed the pilgrim
age in accordance with the injunctions in due order. On seeing the
excellent TTrtha, the performer of wonderful miracles, he became
:: End of Ayodhya-Mahatmya ::
SKANDA PURANA
CHAPTER ONE
Query by Savarni123
Saunaka* said:
1. О Sauti,4 means conducive to the beatitude of living beings
such as Dharma (duties pertaining to the different castes and stages of
life), knowledge, aversion to worldly desires, Yoga and others, have
been mentioned in various ways by you to us.
2. (These were explained) with various kinds of legends and
traditional accounts, clarifying them with great perspicuity. О highly
Sauti replied:
9. О Saunaka, the great sage Savarni had humbly asked Skanda,
the son of Sankara, this very question.
Savarni enquired:
10. О Guha, various kinds of Dharmas, knowledge of Sankhya
and means like Yoga (as) explained by you on many occasions, have
been heard by me.
11. I certainly regard them too difficult to pursue in case of
people like me. Even for others who are great and capable, they can
be pursued with great difficulty and yield results after a long period
of time.
12. Hence, now it behoves you to tell me that most excellent
means which is easy to pursue for people of different classes and
stages of life and leads to their spiritual good (Moksa).
Sauti said:
13. When Guha was thus asked by that eminenfsage desirous of
H ix .l.14-23 227
Skanda said:
14. Listen, О Brahmana, I shall now relate to you what has been
heard by me from my father’s mouth, the means of attaining Moksa,
easy for all living beings.
15. To persons belonging to all castes and stages of life, who are
eagerly desirous of accomplishing their own cherished objects, there
is no other means at all in this world comparable to the gratification
of deities.
16. Even if the slightest meritorious act or service is rendered
with reference to deities, it confers the great fruit (of the act, probably
liberation) on men without any difficulty or impediment.
17. It is due to its association with deities that performance of
(ritualistic) acts pertaining to deities, manes, one’s own (specific) duty
or an act with some end in view, quickly yields accomplishment of
what one wishes for.
18. It is due to this that whatever (practice or act) such as Sankhya,
Yoga, Vairagya (indifference to worldly objects) etc. has been previ
ously declared as difficult becomes easy to accomplish immediately.
19. Inasmuch as cherished objectives are achieved only by the
propitiation of God, he should be propitiated with love and devotion,
to the best of one’s capacity, by all men.
Savarni enquired:
20. О Six-faced Lord, formerly various types of gods have been
told by you to me. Various methods of propitiating them have been
described by you.
21. All the various kinds of fruits, the chief of which is the attain
ment of heaven etc., (of those propitiations) have been proclaimed by
you. But they are swallowed up (terminated) by Time.
22. О Guha, the fruit such as the attainment of Jana (Loka) and
other higher worlds resulting from the propitiation of Brahma by Yogins
who abstain from worldly activities, is also impermanent and transi
tory, as it lasts for two Parardhas (100 years of Brahma) only.
23. What is the propriety of acquiring those fruits with very great
difficulties by acts very difficult to perform, if the fruits obtained be
perishable?
228 Skanda Purana
Sauti said:
28. Lord Guha who was thus accosted by the great sage (Savarni)
became highly pleased. The noble-minded god respectfully spoke this
to him.
CHAPTER TWO
Skanda asked:
1. О you expert in making enquiries, О sinless one, you are asking
a very great (difficult) question, a reply to which cannot be found in
hundreds of years even by great knowers of Brahman, by one’s own
reasoning, except through the grace of God.
2. I shall tell you what became known to me through the favour
of Vasudeva. There is nothing that should not be told to a person devoted
to Dharma, О pious-minded one.
3-4. When the battle of Bharata was over, the King (Yudhisthira)
having no enemy yet bom, asked BhTsma who was superior among the
knowers of Dharma this very question. He (BhTsma) was lying on the
bed of arrows. He had attained undisturbed spiritual identity with Acyuta
(Krsna) through meditation. He was expert both in Vedas and Agamas.
Yudhisthira said:
5. If one desires attainment of the four (main) objectives of life
(i.e. Dharma, Wealth, Pleasure and Liberation), what deity should be
worshipped by one among the four castes (Brahmana, Ksatriya, Vaigya
H.ix.2.6-17 229
and ^udra) and in any of the four stages of life (i.e. Brahmacarya,
Grhastha, Vanaprastha and Sannyasa), О (grand)father?
6. What Siddhi (accomplishment) can be obtained without any
obstacles? How can it be achieved within a short time? How can a
person of a meagre store of merits attain a great position? О grand
father, you are omniscient. Please remove this doubt (problem) of mine.
Skanda said:
7. When asked thus by that pious-souled Yudhisthira, BhTsma,
the son of Santanu, looked at the lotus-face of Lord Krsna and smiled
gently, О sage.
8. Directed to speak by a gesture of his eyes by him (Krsna), he
narrated the greatness of Vasudeva as proclaimed by Nara and Narayana,
as was heard from (his) father.
9. Having heard it, even Narada went again to Kuruksetra. He
came back to Kailasa, and narrated it to Father, who in turn told it to
me.
10. О guileless one, I shall communicate fully that to you, who
(devoutly) enquire about it. О excellent sage, it is decided in a great
assembly, and is devoid of all doubts.
11. Vasudeva, the Supreme Brahman, Srlkrsna, the Supreme Man,
the God, should be worshipped by men irrespective of their entertain
ment of desires for objects, or desirclessness, and even by liberated
persons.
12. In every way, he is to be pleased with devotion, by means of
performance of one’s respective Dharmas (specific religious duties),
by twice-born castes in their stages of life, and by women, &0dra and
other lower castes.
13. Therefore, all religious and ritualistic acts pertaining to gods
and manes should always be done out of love (and devotion) for him
in the proper manner, as prescribed in the Vedas.
14-15. Whatever auspicious act is performed by men here for the
sake of attainment of happiness—even if it is properly done (in the
Gastric way)—if that act be devoid of its relation with Krsna, it should
be known as perishable and conducive to little fruit. It lacks excel
lence of fruit, and due to factors like inauspiciousness of place etc.,
it is full of defects. It is never conducive to the attainment of men's
cherished objects.
16-17. Verily, that act is righteous, if it is performed for pleasing
£rikrsna. If related to him, then thereby everything becomes free from
230 SkandaPurana
CHAPTER THREE
*
Sri Vasudeva to Be Worshipped by All
Narada said:
1. You are being praised in Vedas along with Puranas in all their
divisions and sub-divisions. О Acyuta, you are the eternal creator, con
troller. You are the creator and this entire world is always within you
(i.e. you are all-pervasive).
2. О Lord, (persons belonging to) the four stages of life, (people
of) all castes, everyday adore with (worshipful, ritualistic) acts, you
who are abiding in various forms.
3. You are the father, the mother and the eternal God unto all.
We do not know whom you worship as father or god.
Narayana replied:
4. This esoteric matter should be kept secret with one’s own
232 SkandaPurdna
* Cf. BG XI.47.
II.ix.3.18-32 233
18. О sage, when their (stock of) merit is exhausted, their enjoy
ment and prosperity dwindle fast with the passage of time, even if they
are unwilling.
19. Even in the case of Devas who are established there as au
thority, the destruction of their desired enjoyment and lordship frequently
takes place with the speed of Time during Brahma's day.
20. Yogins, the performers of penance who have firm devotion in
Nivrtta Dharma go to Jana and other three worlds beyond (our) three
worlds (viz. the earth, the nether world and heaven).
21. As desired by them, they enjoy the pleasures and lordship
afforded in those respective worlds. They live equally in happiness,
during the daily type of Pralaya (world destruction).
22. At the end of two Parardhas (i.e. one hundred) years of God
Brahma, their worlds as well as their prosperity, pleasures and lordliness,
perish with the speed of Time, О Narada.
23. Now this two-fold Karma, though possessed of Gunas, becomes
devoid of Gunas, if performed with reference to (i.e. dedicating it to)
Visnu.
24. Its fruit is imperishable. It is much more than what is desired
by men. Those devotees go to the supreme abode of the Lord from eight
(various) modes of life.
25. Hence people with (right) discrimination always do all the
acts, whether of the Pravrtta or Nivrtta type, (remaining imbued) al
ways with devotion to Visnu.
26-28. О sage, Brahma, Siva, Manu, Daksa, Bhrgu, Dharma, Yama,
MarTci, Ahgiras, Atri, Pulastya, Pulaha, Kratu, Vaibhraja, Vasistha,
Sun-god, Moon-god, Patriarchs like Казуара, Kardama and others, all
gods, sages, all castes, and (persons belonging to) all stages of life—
all those who have resorted to Pravrtta Dharma (should) worship that
very Lord.
29-30. Sana, Sanatsujata, Sanaka, Sanandana, Sanatkumara, Kapila,
Aruni, Sanatana, Rbhu, Yati and sages like Hamsa who are steady
performers of vows—all these who arc established in Nivrtta Dharma,
worship that very Lord.
31. Considering gods and ancestors as parts of the person of Vasudeva,
they everyday worship them with the mode of worship free from injury
to beings.
32. Wherever these are posted by him according to their powers,
whether it is Pravrtta type of Dharma or Nivrtta type, they abide by
it. In both the cases they never transgress the bounds of morality and
234 SkandaPurana
CHAPTER FOUR
Sveta-Dvlpa
Skanda said:
1. He (Narada) who was the greatest one among persons possess
ing knowledge of the soul, and who was thus spoken to by the Superme
Person Narayana, addressed the following words to that Acyuta, the
greatest one among the worlds, the very abode of the welfare of the
world.
II.ix.4.2-11 235
Narada said:
2. О Lord, whatever has been spoken by you, who have concealed
your immense lustre within the form of a sage, has been heard by me
completely. But I know in my mind that all this is the sport of you
only, who are the Lord of all.
3. О Bhuman (Visnu), I shall have all my wishes fulfilled by
your sight only, which is earnestly desired by my heart. 1, however,
have a strong desire to see your previous (original) form. О Lord, I am
curious (to see it),
* Cf BG XI.47.
236 Skanda Purana
Savarni said:
17. Who are those men who are beyond the range of sense-organs,
free from diseases and discharges of the body, full of sweet fragrance?
How are persons of such category born? What is their destiny?
18. £veta-dvlpa is on the surface of this earth, (though) in an ocean
of waters. How did you proclaim the state of being beyond the (ken of)
sense-organs, in case of the inhabitants of Sveta-dvlpa?
I. Cf. Mbh, Santi 335.8-12 for the description of residents of £veta-dvipa. The
Purana-writer has idealized £veta-dvlpa as compared with its description in Mbh.
This Dvfpa is located on the earth but the residents are Aksara-Purusas. This
DvFpa is a gateway to Goloka and Vaikuntha (infra Ch. 7.36-37).
II.ix.4.19-30 237
Skanda replied:
21-22. Those persons called imperishable ones (Aksara) who, through
their undivided propitiation solely of the consort of Rama (i.e. Visnu)
during previous Kalpas, attained the state of Brahman and have at
tained agelessness and immortality, stay in this domain of SvetadvTpa
for serving Vasudeva and are being watched by gods and sages.
23. When the time of world-destruction arrives, they will stay as
independent beings in the eternal domain (,Aksara-dhaman), free from
the fear of Kala (Death, Time) and Maya.
24. Even here, those persons as well, who are born of Maya and
hence are perishable, verily become similar to those (Aksara Purusas)
through pious adorations.
25-27. О excellent sage, persons really become like those (Aksara
Purusas) through (practice of) non-violence, penance, (by abiding) by
one’s specific duties, through non-attachment to worldly objects,
knowledge of the glory of Vasudeva and steadiness in (devotion to) the
Atman, supreme devotion (to the Lord), and contacts with the noble-
souled ones, even though (originally) they are devoid of service to
Hari, have no desire for liberation, and are covetous of all super-natu
ral powers like Anima, but by hearing and describing to each other the
birth and great deeds of Sri Hari (they become so).
28. Even when the creation of the universe is under way, these are
not born through the force of Time anywhere. Due to their indepen
dence they do not perish like others at the time of world-destruction.
29. Now, I shall narrate to you an ancient legend, О sage, whereby
a person belonging to this world, reached that stage.
30. О Brahmana, the legend that I heard from my father was a
long one. It is to be narrated to you today. It is only the summary of
it that is remembered.
238 SkandaPuram
CHAPTER FIVE
1. Uparicara Vasu: A pious king of Cedi, a great devotee of Visnu. Indra was
so intimate with him that he shared his seat and bed with him (Mbh, Santi 335.17-
26). Indra gave him his unfading VaijayantI garland and a heavenly car and so he
always moved in the sky and hence came to be known as Upari-cara (Mbh, Adi
63.13-17). Other details of his life are given in this and the subsequent chapters.
2. This Vasu was Ayu’s descendant and not son. His father's name was Krti.
(PE, pp 808-809).
3. According to Mbh, Adi 63.2, Indra gave him the kingdom of Cedi and not
Vasudeva.
ELix.5.10-24 239
10. He resorted with all heart to Janardana, god of gods, who has
no beginning, middle and end, the imperishable creator of the world.
11-15. The king always concentrated his mind at the feet of Sri
Vasudeva,1 and his ears in listening to the story of the Lord. He (de
voted) his eyes to the vision of Mukunda, as well as of his devotees.
The Lord of the land (king) devoted his speech in praising the qualities
of Hari. The king used his nose in smelling the fragrance of TulasT
leaves and flowers, which had touched the feet of Narayana, and not
any other kind of perfume. He (concentrated) on the touch of the gar
ments enjoyed (used) by the Lord of Sri (Visnu) to his skin (body). He
used his tongue (to take in and enjoy) the food offered to Narayana. The
king used his feet to go to the sacred precincts of the temple of the
Lord, and his hands for the service of Hari.
16. He used his head (the best part of the body) for paying obei
sance to the feet of Visnu. He formed intimate friendship with great
devotees of the Lord.
17. Not a single moment of the royal sage, who observed the vow
of devotion to Visnu, was wasted without (performance of) devotion to
the Lord of Rama.
18. He celebrated with great preparations (and pomp), the festi
vals of the birth etc. of Visnu. He constructed for this purpose temples,
gardens and parks.
19. О excellent Brahmana, while he was carrying on with such
devotion unto Narayana, the king of gods (Indra) offered him, of his
own accord, participation in his own bed and seat.
20. Indra gave him the most beautiful garland known as VaijayantT,
made of unfading lotuses. He also gave him precious stones and jewels
in abundance.
21. Everything, his own self, kingdom, wealth, queen, vehicles,
were always looked upon by him as belonging to the Lord.
22. With full concentration of mind and devoutly he resorted to
the Satvata form of procedure, and regularly performed all great sac
rificial acts, both with desired objects in view, and as demanded by
the occasion.
23. In the mansion of that noble soul, prominent Brahmanas, experts
in the Pancaratra doctrine, generally used to enjoy food offered to the
Lord.
24. While the destroyer of enemies ruled in the righteous way, no
1. VV 11-18 describe how Vasu was an Ekantin devotee of Vasudeva. These
verses explain in a way how to perform such exclusive type of devotion.
240 Skatida Ригана
untruth was uttered (by him), nor did (his) mind get corrupt, not did he
commit the slightest sin physically.
25. For the sake of enhancing his devotion unto the Lord the king
daily heard the great Tantra called Pancaratra from the mouth of devo
tees of the Lord.
26. Establishing pure religion and gratifying his subjects, the king
protected the earth like Indra taking care of heaven.
27. In his kingdom there was no person of the seven varieties of
flesh-eaters (Raksasas) nor were there any wearing the garb of atheists.
28. In his kingdom adulterous women and men seducing the wives
of others, or perpetrators of promiscuous, irreligious acts (such as intercaste
marriages) were not even heard of.
29. While he ruled his kingdom, nobody even smelt the fragrance
of eleven kinds of madya (inebriating drinks)1, nor three kinds of Surd
(spirituous liquors)12 (a kind of beer—MW).
30. Though he was endowed with these qualities, on a certain
occasion he fell down from heaven and entered the bowels of the earth
for speaking an untruth out of partiality for the heaven-dwellers (gods).
31. Even while he was within the bowels of the earth, the king,
a lover of piety, remained devoted to Narayana and was steady in
performing the Japa (muttering the name) of the Lord.
32. Through His grace, he was lifted up again (elevated), from the
place. After having attained heaven, he enjoyed pleasures as desired
by his mind.
33. Through the curse of his manes, he became the king of Cedi
(Bundelkhand and a part of Madhya Pradesh in India) on the earth. He
performed devotion unto Hari delightfully and alertly in the Pancaratra
way.
34-35. He then attained heaven. With his divine body the king increased
his propitiation of the Lord and great sages and staying there for some
time, he attained to the abode of the Lord which is free from all fears.
CHAPTER SIX
Savarni said:
1. That King Vasu was a great devotee of the Lord. What lie
(deceitful statement) did he utter, whereby he went down from heaven
to the bowels of the earth?
2. Who lifted him up again on the earth? Why was he cursed by
his fathers. How was the king redeemed then? О Skanda, please narrate
it to me.
Skanda replied:
3. О Brahmana, listen to the story of Vasu who had the brilliance
of God Indra. By hearing it, there will be instantaneous destruction of
all sins.
4. Formerly, in the Svayambhuva Manvantara, Indra, by name
ViSvajit, began a great sacrifice called Asvamedha, О sage.
5. Beasts like goats and others were tied there and they were
bleating frequently. All the multitudes of Devas were desirous of the
taste (of their flesh).
6. By a lucky chance great sages having the refulgence of the
sun, came there in the course of their touring of the world for the
welfare of the people.
7. They were respectfully received with Padya, Arghya and other
items of (formal) welcome. Those sages saw the multitude of bleating
sacrificial beasts.
1. The story of the fall of Uparicara Vasu for deciding in favour of himsa
(killing animals) in a sacrifice is repeated in Vayu 1.57.89-114; MtP 152; Mbh,
Santi 337.13-16. It shows the spread of the influence of Ahiriisa. The original
procedure of this Yajha prescribes animal-slaughter (vide HD Il.ii. pp 1229-1236
for the procedure of Asvamedha). The Purana-writer’s tirade against this in vv
14-20 and affirmation that himsa in sacrifice is against Dharma, shows the social
change of attitudes to Himsa in the name of religion. Though the present Purana
advocates Paficaratra doctrine, it differs from the strange belief of Padcaratra
which advocates animal slaughter in sacrifice on the ground that as the animal
attains better world, it is not Himsa but protection (rakjanam). A great Vai$nava
advocate of Pahcaratra like Ramanuja states in this connection: atisayitabhyudaya-
sadhanabhuto vydpdroIpa-duhkhado’pi na himsa, pratyuta гаЦапат eva ($п-ЫиЦуа
III. 1.25)
No comment is necessary!
242 SkandaPurana
means ‘a goaf and not 'seeds', and while the disconsolate great sages
were again admonishing them, the glorious King Uparicara (Vasu) came
there by chance. That intimate friend of Indra was illuminating the
quarters by his brilliance.
36. Having seen Vasu passing through the atmosphere coming there
all of a sudden, the Brahmanas told the Devas: "He will remove your
doubts".
37-40. ‘This lord of the earth formerly performed thousands of great
sacrifices according to the procedure laid down in the Satvata Tantra
and in Aranyakas, in any of which (sacrifice) killing of (sacrificial)
beasts never took place. There was no adoption of a substitute for
sacrificial fees. Nor was there even indirect homage paid to spirituous
liquor. The king is known everywhere for his protection of Ahimsa
(non-violence) and Dharma. He is the leader (i.e. most prominent one)
among the devotees of Visnu. He is an observer of the vow of having
one wife only. How will this great Vasu, who is such a great religious
person, speaker of the truth and expert in the knowledge of the Vedas,
speak a word other than the truth?”
41. Having reached such an agreement in opinion (about Vasu),
Devas and sages who were eager, immediately approached King Vasu
and asked him:
Skanda said:
43. Vasu folded his palms in reverence and enquired: “Tell me
with due deliberation, the truth as to what view is approved by whom.”
Skanda said:
45. Having known the opinion of Devas, Vasu due to his support
D.ix.6.46—Шх.7.7 245
of their views then told that sacrifices are to be performed with beasts
like goats.
46. He thus supported the view of those who believed in the wrong
and evil. Though he was the knower of Dharma, the king spoke the
untruth, which was violatory to the Veda.
47. At that very moment the king fell down from the sky due to
his faulty (untrue) speech, and immediately entered the earth.
48. The king lying in the bowels of the earth experienced great
distress. But due to his refuge in Narayana, his memory did not fail
(abandon) him.
49. The Devas, residents of Svarga, then set at liberty all the
beasts, and being afraid of (perpetrating) violence to living beings,
went to heaven and the great sages to their (respective) hermitages.
CHAPTER SEVEN
Skanda said:
1. Then the king who was in the bowels of the earth, censured
his own act (of giving a false judgement). He deeply repented and paid
respect to those great sages. In his mind he muttered the three-syl
labled Mantra of the Lord.
2. There, even in the chasm of the earth, the king respectfully
and with great devotion, mentally worshipped Hari, the Lord of Devas,
five times a day.
3. Then, Lord Vasudeva, the protector of the world, was pleased
with him (Vasu) who, even in adverse circumstances, worshipped him
at the proper time and in accordance with the Gastric injunctions.
4. Lord Visnu, the conferer of boons, spoke of his own accord to
Garuda, the best of birds, and of great velocity, who was standing near
him.
Skanda said:
8. Then Garuda, of the speed of wind, spread out his wings and
entered the chasm of the earth, where Vasu of controlled speech was
staying.
9. The son of Vinata (Garuda) lifted him up with his beak and
immediately flew up in the sky and left him there.
10. At that very moment, the king regained consciousness and
again became one moving in higher regions. Along with his (physical)
body he went to Svarga and got the supreme bliss.
11. О Brahmana-sage, in this way, on account of his disrespect
for the truth (or saintly people), by his sinful transgressive speech, a
state undeserving to performers of sacrifices was attained by that noble-
souled knower of Dharma.
12. Only Lord Hari, the Supreme Man, was served by him (through
devotion). Thereby, he got absolved of sins quickly, and obtained (stay
in) Svarga.
13. There, he enjoyed different kinds of pleasures as desired by
him. He lived there like another Indra, with his praises sung by Suras.
14. On one occasion, Acchoda saw him moving in an aerial car,
bright like the sun, accompanied by a divine damsel called Adrika.1
15. She was the mental daughter of the noble-souled, formless
manes called Agnigvatta, who dwell in the domain of Soma.
16. The lady of pure smiles did not know her own ancestors due
to their formlessness. She thought (king) Vasu as being her father. He
too regarded her as his own daughter.
1. Pre-birth has been a popular motif in ancient Indian stories to explain the
events of the present times. The Jataka Tales (Buddhist and Jaina) are examples
of the use of this motif in non-Bh&hmanical literature. Brahmanical Puranas abound
in such tales. The present episode explains the birth of Vyasa from Paralara in
unmanied state to SatyavatT and her marriage with £antanu.
The curse of Agni£vatta parents to their daughter Acchoda is used as a motif
to explain a “future inevitable event** viz. Vyasa’s birth from Satyavati in an
unmarried state. In Mbh, Adi 63.58 Adrika bacame a fish by Brahma's curse and
not by that of AgniSvattas, the parents of Acchoda.
D.ix.7.17-30 247
17-18. Seeing their mutual feelings of such (filial) nature, the manes
cursed them: “0 daughter, you will be the veritable daughter of this
king on the earth.
О Vasu, it is definite that you will be (born as) a human being on
the earth and give birth to this (daughter of ours) as your daughter from
this very divine lady as your wife.
19. Both of them who were thus cursed by the manes (Pitrs), bowed
down to them, and prayed to them for absolving them from the curse.
Then those compassionate ones spoke:
20. “It was due to the inevitability of such events that this curse
was incurred by you. But that will contribute to welfare of you both.
21. О Vasu, in the twenty-eighth Dvapara Yuga, you will be the
son of noble-souled King Krtayajna on the earth.
22. Even there (on the earth), you will be endowed with all your
present qualities, capable of moving in the sky, a leader of the great
devotees of the Lord.
23. Having devoutly worshipped Visnu as per procedure of the
Pancaratra, you, along with your progeny, will worship Devas and us
(Pitrs) with the remnants (of Visnu worship).
24. Then you will attain Svarga with a divine body. Having en
joyed heavenly pleasures, you will get to the domain of Visnu.
25. О Acchoda, you too will be born with a part of yours from
Adrika in the form of a (female) fish. You will be well-known on the
earth as Kali.
26. There, in your girlhood (in an unmarried state), you will have
Hari as your son from Paragara. Through his grace alone you will get
enjoyment in life and liberation (after death).'*
Skanda said:
27. The king who was both imprecated and blessed by the Pitrs,
having been bom of Krtayajna on the earth, became famous on account
of his virtues.
28. As before (in his previous life), that knower of the procedure
of worship of Devas and Pitrs was a devotee of Krsna. The great Indra
gave his friend (Vasu) abundant wealth.
29. Indra gave him even the Flag of Victory (Vijayadhvaja) which
was formerly obtained by him from Vasudeva in Sveta-dvlpa, for de
stroying his enemies.
30. The king who could move about in the sky enjoyed very rare
earthly pleasures. In the end he attained the celestial world (endowed)
248 SkandaPurana
CHAPTER EIGHT
Curse to Devendrax
Savarni enquired:
1. How is it that sacrifices (involving Himsa) became prevalent
again after sacrifices involving injury to animals were given up by
Devas at the request of great sages?
2. How is it that the eternal pure Dharma became perverse among
ancient and modern Devas, sages and kings?
3. О Six-faced God! A great doubt has been engendered today in
me. You are a knower of the truth of all Sastras. It behoves you to
remove that doubt.
Skanda replied:
4. Time (Kala) is mighty. The minds of the powerful ones who
arc possessed of desire, anger, taste for liquor, avarice, pride are pene
trated by Kala.
5. Good ideas of men become spoiled by being subjected to anger
and pride owing to the transgression of (the advice of) the great ones
who speak true and beneficial (words).
6. Even though they arc wise, they are intent on doing a criminal
act, repent and continuously wander in Samsara.
7. But even Kala (god of Death, Time) is not able to create
aberrations in the mind of those who are devotees *
of Krsna and are
devoid of (illicit) desire for pleasure etc., and whose instinctive ten
dencies have all ceased.
8. I speak the truth that any person who does not resort to proper
Dharma (path of virtue), shall never be liberated from Samsara.
9. О most excellent Brahmana! I shall now narrate to you, the
beginning of sacrifices involving violence, as I have heard it from the
mouth of my father (Siva).
10. Here they cite as an illustration this ancient legend in which
Narayana and LaksmT are glorified.I.
I. In this chapter also the curse motif is used to explain Indra's loss of fortune.
The episode is mentioned in BhP and Brahmanda P. (Purana Index 11.106). The
object here is to explain why Yajfias involving Hiihsa came in vogue even after
that punishment to Uparicara Vasu.
250 SkandaPurana
CHAPTER NINE
Skanda said:
1. О sage, under the influence of Time leading to the perversity
of Dharma in future, he (Durvasas) said, “I will not forgive” and went
to Kailasa.
2. Goddess £ri also then disappeared from the three worlds into
the sea. All the celestial damsels in a body left Indra and followed &ri.
3. Penance, Purity, Mercy, Truth, Pada (?), True Dharma, Pros
perity, Supernatural Powers, Strength, Sattva (quality of goodness)—all
of them followed Sri.
4. Vehicles, elephants and others, ornaments of gold etc., pre
I. Gautama did not spare Indra for his affair with his wife Ahalya. He did
curse Indra whereby he became goat-testicled (VR I. 49.2-10).
252 SkarulaPurana
1. The following are the nine treasures of Kubera: Padma, Mahapadma, Sartkha,
Makara, Kacchapa, Mukunda, Nanda, Nila, and Kharva. They are also personified
as the attendants of Kubera or Lak$mi.
2. This has been the stance of MTmaihsakas, Pancaratrikas i e. Vaisnavas like
Ramanuja.
n.ix.9.17-29 253
CHAPTER TEN
Savarnisaid:
1. О Skanda, how was Goddess SrT, who was submerged in the
sea, regained by Indra? Tell me the whole episode associated with
Narayana.
Skanda said:
2 Devendra who was devoid of SrT was defeated by Danavas
who themselves were bereft of Sri. He was deprived of his position and
all the retinue.
3. Along with the Lords of (different) quarters like Varuna and
others he wandered in different mountains, valleys, places overgrown
with creepers and forests.
4. They wore garments made of barks and skins. They consumed
the flesh of animals and birds. The behaviour and garments of Devas,
Daityas, men and reptiles (Nagas) were all alike.
5. In all their homes the utensils were made of earth only. Women
Шх. 10.6-19 255
(wives) of all of them were wretched and miserable like female Pi€acas
(ogresses).
6. At first there was total absence of rainfall for twelve years
on the earth. Then during the course of a year there were few showers
at some places, while there was none elsewhere.
7. In this way they passed one hundred years in poverty and suffering.
But due to their powerful destiny they did not die even in extreme misery.
8. They lived like hellish beings in hells but were almost dead.
Even though they tried to gain Sri by performing sacrifice etc., they
did not succeed.
9. Then at the end of one thousand years Devas who were beg
garly-attired due to the curse of Durvasas, sought refuge in God Brahma.
10. Devas including Indra and others, paid obeisance to him and
narrated the tale of their misery. But due to his omniscience he already
knew the plight of the Suras.
11. God Brahma, along with Sankara who was capable of warding
off his misery, censured Indra and expressed the desire (to Indra) to
propitiate Visnu.
12. By his penance he (Indra) propitiated him, to whom penance
was dear. Then he, accompanied with all categories of Devas, went to
the Milk-Ocean.
13. On the beautiful northern shore of that ocean, they who had
taken the vow of fasting, performed penance, standing on one leg with
arms raised up.
14. With their minds concentrated, they meditated in their heart
on Ke£ava, Vasudeva, the consort of LaksmI, the destroyer of all troubles
and miseries.
15. At the end of a hundred years Lord Visnu, Sri Krsna himself,
showed favour unto the poor Devas who were extermely miserable.
16. He whose form was invisible even to self-knowing performers
of great penance, manifested himself out of grace with the brilliance
of a million suns.
17. At first, a very brilliant disc of refulgence suddenly flashed
forth. All the Devas saw that unparalleled white cloud.
18. God Brahma and Siva espied within it the Four-armed Lord
of Rama, of bluish-dark complexion like a cloud, holding in his hands
a mace, a conch, a lotus and a discus.
19. He was adorned with a crown, a girdle, bracelets of gold, ear
rings etc. He was wearing yellow silken garment and his person was
divinely beautiful.
256 Skanda Ригала
20. With their minds overwhelmed with ecstasy, both of them pros
trated themselves like a staff. Devas seeing him through his desire (to
be seen by them), bowed down to him with joy.
21. Like a penniless person getting a treasure-trove, they became
overjoyed. With their palms folded in reverence, all the Devas
devoutly praised him.
Devas prayed:
22. Om, obeisance to you, О venerable Lord Vasudeva. We medi
tate upon you. Bow to you, Pradyumna, Aniruddha, Sankarsana (i.e. all
the Vyuhas of Vasudeva).
23. (Obeisance to you) of the form of Omkara, Brahman who have
manifested your threefold form, the cause of the creation, maintenance
and destruction of the Cosmic Egg, one devoid of (three) Gunas.
24. (Bow to you) whose form gives delight to the eyes, the des
troyer of the troubles of those who,bow down to you; obeisance to you
Kesava, the form of the supreme being.
25. Bow to (you) Krsna who give delight to all his devotees, the
fascinator (deluder) of Kala, Maya and others, who are forever delight
ful, who abide by the proper Dharma.
26. Obeisance to you who are famous as being capable of saving
persons who are submerged in the ocean of worldly existence, to one
of beautiful form, dark like a cloud.
27. Repeated obeisance to the wielder of the mace, lotus, conchshell
and discus with your long arms, the protector of Devas, cows, Brahmanas
and of Dharma.
28. Bow to the most excellent one, the bestower of desired boons
to those who seek refuge, one worthy of being known through Vedas and
Agamas, and who are the essence of all Vedas.
29. We pay obeisance to you, О Visnu, whose resplendent, beau
tiful form exists within a halo of light, who are greater than the greatest.
30. Repeated obeisance to you, the great one, whose greatness is
far beyond the ken of speech and mind, who are of imperishable form,
who abide within the hearts of all.
31. You alone are the one who give happiness to those who resort
to you. Hence we who are deeply troubled by great adversity, have
sought refuge in you.
32. Due to our offensive behaviour towards Durvasas, a devotee
of the God of Gods, we became bereft of Sri and have been reduced
to this wretched plight.
Шх.10.33—-Плх.11.1 257
Skanda said:
35. The Lord, the store of mercy, who was thus implored by Devas,
addressed the Suras, delighting them with a voice deep like the rum
bling of a cloud.
Skanda said:
40. After saying this, Visnu, destroyer of the distress of his devo
tees, vanished. Devas bowed down to him and began to act according
to what he had said.
CHAPTER ELEVEN
Skanda said:
1. Having ordered Mahendra and others ot have consultation with
Asuras, Gods Brahma and Rudra went to their respective residence.I.
I. The belief in the existence of an immortality-giving liquid medicine and how
it was churned out of the sea by Devas and Asuras and how the Asuras were
cheated by Vi$nu in a female form is found in most Puranas and Mbh.
258 Skarula Puratui
it, when the sea presented himself in person and spoke as follows:
14. “O Suras and Asuras! If you will give me some share of the
Nectar 1 shall bear the torments of the churning with Mandara.”
15. Promising him to do so, they first threw in it medicinal plants
and creepers, and wound the king of Nagas (Cobras) round that golden
mountain.
16. Then Devas remembered Hari in their hearts for (getting) success
in the undertaking. Acyuta who sees everything came there the mo
ment they remembered him.
17. The multitude of Devas became glad at his sight. They stood
there holding the front part (i.e. mouth) of the Lord of snakes, with the
Lord’s approval.
18-19. Showing his partiality to Devas, the Lord stood where the
Devas were standing. But then the Daityas became enraged. “We are
senior in penance, learning and age (to Devas). How should we hold
the inauspicious (dirty) lower part of this (i.e. serpent)? We are not
such fools.”
20. (As if) showing respect to them, Visnu, along with Devas
laughed loudly and giving the front part (mouth, to Asuras), made Suras
hold the tail (of Vasuki).
21. The Daityas did not know that his act of the Lord of Sri was
(for) the protection of the immortal ones (Devas) from the heat of the
poisonous hissing of the great snake.
22. Then, the sons of Kasyapa (Devas and Asuras) with their ends
of lower garments tucked into the waistband and fastened with leather
straps, raised up the golden-peaked Mandara resplendently dark like a
big black bee.
23. Shouting loudly and extremely eager, they placed that moun
tain of twenty-two thousand Yojanas in height, into the sea.
24. The mountain, though held up by them, had no support below.
Due to its extremely heavy weight, it went down to the bottom (of the
sea). And they were greatly agitated.
25. Then the Lord himself who always carries out the tasks of his
devotees, was praised by Devas. The Lord in the form of a tortoise
lifted it (the mountain) from below.
26. As soon as they saw it lifted up, the hearts and faces of them
all bloomed with joy. The mountain became stable on the very exten
sive back of the tortoise.
27. Then the Devas and others with all their power, churned the
ocean very fast with incessant hissing sound of exhaustion coming out
260 Skan daP uram
of their mouth.
28. While the mountain was being whirled (round and round), many
trees fell down and the fire generated from their friction burnt down
lions and others.
29. Many aquatic animals were pounded down by the great moun
tain and met death by hundreds in the Milk-Ocean.
30. The roaring sound of the churning was loud like deep thunder
ing sound of a multitude of Samvartaka clouds (appearing at the destruction
of the world). And it (i.e. roaring sound) was intensified with its echo.
31. By hissing and puffing out of the mouth of Vasuki, whose body
was distressed and exhausted by powerful pulling, the Daityas became
bereft of power and extremely exhausted and shone like burning coals.
32. They constantly suffered (from) the unbearable poisonous fire.
The thousand mouths of the king of serpents dropped down through
fatigue.
33. Lord Sankarsana (6esa) of great lustre bore the poisonous fire
and at once held them (i.e. the mouths of Vasuki) up as directed by
the Lord (Visnu).
34. From the ocean that was being churned for one thousand years,
there came out the poison Halahala1spreading to all the quarters and
sub-quarters.
35. They (Suras and Asuras) whose bodies were constantly scorched
by the poison called KalakQta which burns down the three worlds, ran.
away.
36. Then God Brahma, Devas, Protectors of Prajas, all of them
praised Siva, the consort of Uma, praying to him for drinking up the
poison.
37. The Lord told him, “you were bom first and are the seniormost
of the Devas. This poison is bom first out of the ocean. Hence you take
it.”
38. The merciful Siva, seeing the fright of Devas and due to the
order of Hari, sucked up, by his yogic power, the whole of the poison
on his palm.
39. He drank it up and absorbed it in his throat. Hence he became
known as blue-throated and a beneficent god.
40. The drops that fell from his hand while drinking the poison,
were taken up by serpents, scorpions and some medicinal plants.
1. Also known as Kalakuta, the creation of this deadly poison while churning
the ocean and its subsequent swallowing by Siva is described in many Puranas and
Mbh.
Шх.12.1-12 261
CHAPTER TWELVE
Skanda said:
1. Then the sons of КаЗуара became delighted (as the poison
was drunk up). They gathered at the place of churning. They again went
on churning the Ocean for a thousand years.
2. While the Ocean was being churned by all of them, there
emerged nothing. The participants in churning gasping for breath with
their mouths, became slack (through fatigue).
3. The great serpent Vasuki experienced feebleness and frailty
of life. At the time of churning Mandara also could not keep up a
stable condition.
4. Seeing them all bereft of strength, Pradyumna,1authorized by
Visnu, entered the Devas, Asuras and the king of seipents (Vasuki) and
infused strength in them.
5. Even Aniruddha approached the king of mountains and with
his thousand arms, stood like another big mountain.
6. Being wonder-struck at the restoration of extreme energy, the
multitude of Suras and Asuras joyously and energetically churned the
great Ocean.
7. At the gesture of Narayana, Devas and others did not experi
ence any fatigue. With the rhythmic pulling the churning (operation)
looked splendid.
8. While the big Ocean was thus stirred and shaken up, the exudation
and extracts of medicinal plants flowed into it all round.
9. From the reservoir of water which was in that stage (of being
churned), there emerged the Moon who is called the presiding deity of
loveliness and medicinal herbs.
10. Then the Cow HavirdhanT, the presiding deity of all cows, the
yielder of the wishes of all, with a lustre like the moon, emerged.
11. Then a white horse, the presiding deity of all horses, mani
fested. Airavata, the king of elephants, endowed with four tusks and of
moon-like lustre came out.
12. Then came out the heavenly tree Parijata, the king of all trees.
1. This being a Paftcaratra work, inclusion of help from the different VyQhas,
Pradyumna and Aniruddha, is brought in. Mbh and other Puranas do not mention
them, as for them the persons named as Vyuhas were Yadava heroes at the end
of Dvapara.
262 SkandaPurcuia
Then the excellent gem, the lotus-hued ruby called Kaustubha, emerged.
13. Then were born (i.e. came out) Apsaras (i.e. celestial dam
sels) who were the receptacles of beauty. Then was bom GoddGss Wine,
the goddess that inebriates all.
14. Then came out the Sarnga bow, the presiding deity of all weapons.
Then emerged Pancajanya,1the conch, the supreme deity of all musi
cal instruments.
15. Then the Moon-god, Parijata as well as the bevy of celestial
damsels resorting to the solar path, stood there instantaneously.
16. The leaders of Daityas immediately took hold of the king of
horses and Varunl, while Indra, the king of Devas took Airavata with
the consent of Hari.
17. The (gem) Kaustubha, the (Sarnga) bow and the conch (Pancajanya)
went over to Visnu only. All of them gave Havirdhanl (cow) to sages.
18. While the Ocean was being churned again, Sri herself directly
manifested herself delighting with her glance the three worlds, sur
passing the splendour of all.
19. All Suras, Asuras, men desired to get hold of her but nobody
could approach her brilliance and power.
20. Knowing her to be Sri, by her holding a lotus in her hand,
Vasava and God Brahma and others, who knew her, were highly de
lighted.
21. The Ocean himself in person immediately came there and
saying "This is my daughter', took her in his lap, and occupied a golden
seat.
22. While the Ocean was being churned by those powerful and
firm (determined) seekers of the Nectar, the Nectar did not come out.
23. Then being disappointed regarding the emergence of the Nectar,
they became slack in their efforts. О sage, the sons of Ka£yapa (i.e.
Devas and Daityas) of faded faces became dejected.
24. Seeing them in that state, the Lord, the storehouse of compas
sion, the all-pervading Lord laughed and himself became ready to chum.
25. He was resplendent with the yellow garment, the end knot of
which was tightly fastened with a jewelled girdle. He caught hold of
the serpent in the middle by his (two pairs) of hands.
26. Daityas who caught hold of the mouth of the serpent stood on
1. BhP X differs. Krsna killed the aquatic damon Pancaja or Pancajana who
abducted the son of SandTpani (Krona’s preceptor). After killing Pahcajana, Krsna
took away the conch in which Pancajana lived. (PE 548)
Шх. 12.27—ПЛх. 13.7 263
one side and all the Devas who held the tail of the serpent stood on
the other side.
27. The Lord who stood between them sportively churned the
Ocean, giving delight to the eyes (of all) with ornaments of his hands
becoming (brightly) visible.
28. God Brahma staying in the firmament along with prominent
sages, showered him with flowers, uttering the sound (words) “Be
victorious; be victorious.”
29. Then, from the Ocean that was churned was born a man
Dhanvantari with a part of Visnu. He was fair in complexion, was
holding in his hand a pitcher containing Sudha (Nectar).
30. Taking with him Amrta (Nectar) which was the best essence
of all ghee and other juices of plants and medicines, he went near Sri.
CHAPTER THIRTEEN
Skanda said:
1. All the participants in churning who were seeing the emer
gence of Dhanvantari (with the pitcher of Amrta), saw from a distance
Dhanvantari coming near £ri.
2. Seeing the gold pitcher containing Nectar being held in his
hand, the Asuras suddenly pounced on it, and snatched it away, О Brahmana.
3. Out of them, those who were powerful (enough) seized it, and
ran off with it. The weaker ones, running after them, protested in the
name of decorum and manner of proper behaviours (as follows) :
4. “Oh! Such unrighteous and wicked deed should not be com
mitted by righteous-mided persons. It (the Nectar) should be drunk
after giving it to Devas, the equal partners in the labour (of churning
out Nectar) and not otherwise.”
5. Disregarding that speech (appeal), they quickly ran far away.
Even there, they were forcibly pulling each other’s hands (for securing
the Nectar).
6. While they were proclaiming and crying about “I am the first
and not you”, “I am the first, not you”, “I shall drink it (first)”, they
did not get the opportunity to drink.
7. Then, on seeing the Nectar snatched away by the Daityas,
264 SkandaPurarui
Skanda said:
10. Having heard the pitiable condition of the Devas, the Lord
who performs the tasks of his devotees, told the Suras, “Don’t be afraid”
and was intent to take back the Nectar from Asuras.
11. After assuming a marvellously beautiful feminine form that
enchanted all the world, he approached the Daityas and played with
a ball.1
12. Seeing that beautiful form, they were fascinated and were
overwhelmed with the passion of love. Giving up their mutual struggle,
they approached and spoke:
13. “O blessed lady! Take this pitcher of Nectar and distribute it
amongst us. We are the sons of KaSyapa; О lady with beautiful but
tocks, make us all drink it (Nectar).”
14-15. Requesting her thus, they handed it over to the lady who was
reluctant. She spoke, “No faith should be entertained in me, as 1 am
a self-willed (i.e. wanton) woman. You have done an improper act. I
shall, however, distribute it as per my will.” Though she told them so,
those stupid ones said, “Do as you please”.
16. Then in compliance of her order, Devas, Daityas, Vasuki sat
there in rows, each keeping with his particular group.
17. While they were arranging themselves into groups, MohinT sat
on a golden seat at a distance, facing the rows of gods.
18. Keeping the pitcher of Nectar near her, she, casting her glances
here and there in a woman’s sportive way, sat for a moment like an
indifferent, impartial person.
19. The leaders of Danava group, of whom Vipracitti was promi
nent, were suspicious in their minds about MohinT and hence they seated
themselves near the Devas.
20. Approaching quietly and evading deceitfully her glance, the
I This is MohinT, the 13th incarnation of Visnu, who deluded the Asuras,
refusing them their share in Amrta and distributing it among Devas.
DLix.13.21-33 265
wicked-souled ones carried away the pitcher of Nectar again and were
desirous of drinking it in a secret place.
21. Nara and Narayana came there accompanied by sages. Both
of them saw the Danavas stealing away the Nectar.
22. Instructed by Narayana, Nara at once stopped them.1Snatch
ing away per force that pitcher, he quickly handed it over to Mohinl.
23. Then with a desire to kill Nara, Danavas took up their arms
and attacked him. There was thus a great disorder in the ranks of Asuras.
24. Thereupon, the powerful Lord Nara, the fearless one, uncon
querable by Devas, Daityas and human beings, single-handedly fought
with them.
25. In the meanwhile Visnu who had assumed the form of Mohinl
went about quickly and made all the Devas who were sitting in rows,
drink the Nectar.
26. Even then Rahu, a Danava, entered (the unoccupied place) in
between the Sun and the Moon and sat in the row of the Devas, without
being noticed by anyone.
27. When Mohinl came sprinkling the Nectar in his (Rahu’s) mouth,
both the Sun and the Moon indicated it to her by the glance of their
eyes.
28. Therefore, the Lord who had assumed the highly illusory form
of a woman, cut down his head containing Nectar (within his mouth)
by his discus, which came there as soon as remembered.
29. Hari established it (Rahu’s head) in the planetary position, for
the peace of the people, as that mountain-like head was swallowing
people while shouting loudly.
30. After having made Suras drink the Nectar, he assumed his
male body. The Lord and the Devas fought with Danavas.
31. On the shore of the Ocean there took place the battle of Devas
who grew extremely powerful by imbibing Nectar, and were helped by
Visnu, with Asuras.
32. In that tumultuous battle, the Asuras who were being killed
by Nara, Indra and others, fled away and entered the earth (nether
world).
33. When the Sun set, all the multitudes of Devas came near £ri
and had a great joy at her sight.
CHAPTER FOURTEEN
Skanda said:
1-8. There came (for the marriage-ceremony of Laksml and Narayana)
the following:
God Brahma; the Lords of created being; Sambhu; Manus; great
sages; (twelve) Adityas; (eight) Vasus; (eleven) Rudras; Siddhas;
Gandharvas; Caranas; Sadhyas; (forty-nine) Maruts; (the group of ten
gods called) ViSvedevas; presiding deities of quarters; the two Alvins;
the Fire-god; the Moon; Dharma; the Prajapati himself; Garuda; Kinnaras
and other groups of gods; serpent-devotees of Visnu; of whom Sesa was
the first, wives of all the Devas (such as) SavitrT, ParvatT, PrthivI,
SarasvatT, 6acl, Gauri, §iva, Samjna, Rddhi, Svaha, RohinT, DhQmorna
(wife of Yama), Aditi and the lawful wives like Murti, Daya and others;
Arundhatl, Sandill, Lopamudra, Anasuya and other pious wives of sages;
(Rivers like) Ganga, SarasvatT, Reva, Yamuna, Tapatl (Tapti in north
Maharashtra), Candrabhaga (Chinab), Vipasa (Bias), Satadru (Sutlej),
Devika (Deva? or Gogra), Godavari, Kaverl, Kau^ikT (KosT), Krsna,
VenT, BhTmarathT, the great river TamraparnT, Krtamala (Vaiga near
Madura, Tamil Nadu), Vitasta (Jhclum), Nirvindhya (КаП-Sindh in Malva),
Surasa, CarmanvatT (Chambal), Payosnl (Pain Ganga), Visva and oth
ers.
9. All celestial damsels, of whom Rambha, GhrtacI, VisvacT,
Menaka, Tilottama, and UrvaST were prominent ones came there.
10. All the residents of Vaikuntha as well as all the inhabitants
of Goloka and important attendants of Visnu came there with great
delight.
11. All the eight supernatural powers beginning with Anima (Levi
tation), and nine treasures beginning with £ankha, Padma in their corporal
forms came near Sri.
12. At that time, for the pleasure of Sri, full autumnal moon re
moved all the darkness of the night and the quarters became resplendent.
13. In compliance of the order of God Brahma, Indra began (the
preparations for) her ablution. Tvasta immediately constructed a very
beautiful hall (created for the ceremonial occasion).
14-15. It was furnished with long rows of thousands of pillars decked
with jewels. It was beautified with innumerable wonderful canopies
and with plantain trees. It was adorned with rows of heavenly wish-
Шх. 14.16-29 267
yielding trees bent down with sweet fragrant flowers. It was beautiful
and fascinating in its various parts.
16. It was shining brilliantly with crores of rows of bejewelled
lamps of resplendent light. It appeared bright with arches (beautified)
with suspended pearl-laces.
17. Seating Sri on a bejewelled throne there, great sages per
formed her ablution, preceded by vocal and instrumental music.
18-19. Airavata, Pundarika, Vamana, Kumuda, Anjana, Puspadanta,
Sarvabhauma, Supratlka—these elephants presiding over eight cardinal
points, making a roaring sound, raised up auspicious gold pitchers and
showered her with waters1brought from seas in four quarters.
20. Great rivers in their embodied forms brought waters. Vedas,
assuming personal forms, recited Mantras along with sages.
21. Sweet-voiced Gandharvas sang. Bevies of the celestial dam
sels danced. Other groups of Devas played on musical instruments.
22. There was a great joy all over the three worlds to all em
bodied beings. Brahmanas recited Vedic Suktas of which Srisukta (i.e.
RV 1.165) was the first. Ladies sang songs.
23. Clouds played upon musical instruments such as instruments
of bell metal for beating time. Tabors (Mrdanga drums), instruments
called Gomukha, Panava, large military drums called Anaka, Dundubhi
drums resounded in heaven.
24. There was a shower of saffron accompanied with shouts of
victory. For her personal service were the lawful wives (of sages) and
supernatural powers (in person).
25. The Ocean gave two yellow-coloured silken garments and
abundant invaluable bejewelled ornaments to her who had taken that
auspicious bath.
26. Indra brought to her a seat worthy of being occupied by her.
ViSvakarma gave her bangles and rings set with excellent jewels.
27. The Moon, her brother, offered her an excellent ornament for
the nose (nose ring), and also gave her ornaments set with excellent
jewels for her hair.
28. The Lotus-born (God Brahma) gave her a lotus and SarasvatT
presented her a pearl necklace. Nagas of whom Sesa was prominent
bestowed on her two ear-rings set with the best of jewels.
29. Durga gave her colly rium and saffron symbolic of good fortune
1. Icons showing LaksmT being bathed by elephants are found since the Sufiga
period (N.P. Joshi, Bharatiya Murii Sastra, p.2I9). Here the Purana employs eight
elephants instead of two usually found in these old icons.
268 SkatulaP uram
(securing the favour, firm devotion and long life of the husband). Savitri
gave her an ornament to be worn on the forehead, SacI gave her a betel-
box.
30. The season Spring presented her a flower-garland. Sankara
gave her a necklace. God Varuna gave her the garland VaijayantT.
Kubera bestowed upon her a bejewelled mirror.
31. The Fire-god gave her an invaluable bodice, while Yama bestowed
an auspicious umbrella. Others presented her ornaments suitable for
the occasion.
32. Then the Ocean asked God Brahma, “To whom should I offer
this daughter endowed with excellent ornaments?” The omniscient
Lord then replied:
33-37. “O storehouse of waters! This your daughter is the mother
of mine as well as that of Siva. It is definite that she is the mother
of all Devas and the worlds. She has no other husband than Narayana,
Vasudeva, the Supreme Brahman, the Lord of all, the excellent Purusa.
Therefore, О Ocean, for the felicity of the three worlds give her in
marriage with proper (religious) procedure to the Lord who has arrived
here in person and taken his seat. By giving her (in marriage) to the
Supreme Soul, make your life successful by making your family pure
and lift it up from the ocean of Samsara. (Though) you are one, you
are known in the world by your seven forms due to the division by
seven Dvlpas (continents). By doing this (i.e. offering in marriage), you
will obtain great fame.”
38. Addressed thus by God Brahma, the Ocean who was delighted
and had the hair standing on end, regarded himself as blessed and gave
his daughter to Visnu.
39. Then after requesting the Lord as per procedure, he performed
betrothal (Vagdana) and other details. He thus completed the sacred
precepts pertaining to marriage-ceremony.
40. In the marriage celebrations. Dhanvantari, the Moon-god, Indra
and other deities were on the side of the Ocean-god there.
41. They were the chief ones in bestowing (things like) clothes,
ornaments, vehicles, serving of meals and rendering honours to the
relatives of the bridegroom.
42-43. In the auspicious rite of the marriage-ceremony of LaksmI,
the following were the prominent ladies: river-goddesses of which Ganga
was the first; spouses of Devas beginning with £acl; wives of Moun-
tain(-gods) like Mena (the wife of Himalaya); Supernatural powers
beginning with Anima; Kanti, the lovely wife the Moon-god; and all
Шх. 14.44-57 269
Visnu’s) lotus-feet with the stream of excellent water flowing from the
spout of a golden pitcher (of a particular shape), and carried that water
over his head along with (the heads of) those of the members of his
family (by sprinkling it over them).
58. Then reciting loudly the auspicious verses (relevant to the
occasion), God Brahma made the Ocean-god give (in marriage) §ri to
Acyuta. Enkindling the sacred fire as per injunctions, he offered ob
lations (to the marital fire) along with sages.
59. After giving him his beautiful daughter who had fixed her
sight only on his lotus-feet, he presented the great being numerous rich
garments and bejewelled ornaments along with the daughter.
60. Then Hari circumambulated the duly oblated sacrificial fire
along with Sri, attracting awhile the minds of men and women onlook
ers.
61. The multitudes of gods, along with their wives, worshipped
with reverence, the beautiful parents of the universe occupying the
same beat, presenting to them invaluable garments and ornaments.
62. Goddesses including Durga and others and wives of Devas
including SacT, whose beautiful faces were beaming with smiles, sang
auspicious songs describing the excellences of Visnu.
63-64. The multitudes of the wives of Devas seated in two groups
facing each other, sang with great love and devotion, festive nuptial
songs at the sight of the couple in such a way as on hearing them all
Suras, great sages, all womenfolk saw the Lord along with Sri shining
within themselves, and they sat (still and motionless) as if drawn in
a picture.
65. Paying obeisance with devotion and offering ceremonial aksata
(unbroken grains of rice) etc., the Devas joyously eulogized them in
dividually, with excellent words, humbly folding their palms with
reverence.
CHAPTER FIFTEEN
Eulogy of LaksmhNarayana
Brahma said:
1. After having constantly meditated upon the Vedas, I have
arrived at the decision that, if living beings entertain firmer devotion
H.ix.15.2-8 271
unto you, the delight of Rama, they will enjoy an unending and never
decreasing multitude of pleasures, and that they attain to worlds, the
ultimate destination of which is the Supreme Person.
2. Not knowing this, they propitiate us, Devas, through various
kinds of penances, worships, even though we are (ourselves) possessed
of the qualities of Rajas and Tamas. Hence they are called stupid, О
Kesava. I, therefore, cherish you in my heart.
Sankara said:
3. О Lord! The Three Vedas, Sankhya, Vedanta, Yoga, Purana,
Pancaratra as well as Dharmagastra—all these devoutly sing in various
ways the supreme majestic glory of yours alone.
4. In the first Kalpa (Adi-Kalpa), it is from you, the great one,
alone that these Sastras were born and they have you as their only
resort, О Sovereign Lord. I betake myself to you and worship you, the
Primordial One whose lotus-feet are served by Rama, who are the .source
of the origin of Sastras.
Dharma said:
5. A talk about you is a releaser from the bonds of Samsara. It
is like nectar to embodied beings who are tormented by the three kinds
of miseries (namely, Adhibhautika, Adhidaivika, Adhyatmika). It is a
destroyer of sins accumulated during innumerable births. Devotion unto
you instantly enhances knowledge.
6. О Lord of innumerable names! May it (i.e. a talk about you)
issued from the mouths of saintly persons, forever enter into the valley
(in the form) of my heart, through (my) ear. It should remove every
(other) wish except the one for you. Salute unto you. the ocean of
mercy, the mighty one.
Prajapati said:
7. Blessed are these wish-yielding trees, the shade of which has
been resorted to by you along with Sri. Blissful is the creator (builder)
of this hall (of your marriage-ceremony). Beatified'is this earth where
your seat stands, О Lord.
8. Verily this Ocean is blessed in this world, (inasmuch as) his
own daughter was given unto you directly by him. Blessed are these—
we—who behold you. We have paid our obeisance to you, the blessed
Lord, the consort of Sri.
272 SkandaPurana
Manus said:
9. О Lord of LaksmT! That Dharma certainly is superior to all
(others), the Dharma wherefrom pure devotion unto you, the sifpport of
Dharma, is engendered.
10. We praise you, the soul of Dharma, the leader and protector
of Dharma, the source of Dharma, to whom Dharma is dearest, О Lord.
Sages said:
11. He who is devoid of devotion is averse to you; (being) desir
ous of knowledge he exerts, yet does not achieve success. He is, therefore,
attached to Karmas for a desired object. How can he attain imperish
able joy, О ocean of bliss?
12. Hence, we, filled with faith and devotion, (practising) Dharma,
penance and Vedas (Vedic studies), meditate upon you who are beyond
Maya, the controller of Kala (Death or Time), the noble one, the Lord
of Sn, senior to the senior ones.
lndra said:
13. Really, due to our insulting behaviour towards Durvasas we
became extremely miserable. With your exception, none of these gods
like Brahma, Rudra and others were able to protect us, О Lord.
14. Devoid of all wealth and wanting in food we were reduced to
a condition on par with destitutes on the earth. By you only we had
our miseries removed instantly. Obeisance to you, О Sri Hari.
Fire-god said:
15. The food that is the means of subsistence to Devas, Danavas
and human beings, is created by you only. Therewith learned men offer
oblations in sacrifices to you, and the remnant is carried (offered) to
other inhabitants of heaven.
16. Those performers of sacrifices, though interestedly engaged in
acts for realization of desires, get quickly freed from the bondage of
Karmas and attain to the BrahmT state. The others (i.e. non-sacrificers)
are thieves. I bow down to you, Sri-Yajna-Purusa (Visnu).
Maruts said:
17. By rendering service to you, the imperishable, supreme sta
H.ix.15.18-23 273
Siddhas said:
18. We pay obeisance to you who alone, though causeless, are the
cause of creation (sustenance and destruction) of innumerable Cosmic
Eggs (Brahmandas), to you who are immanent in them yet transcendent
and their controller.
Rudras said:
19. Obeisance to you, the Supreme Person, who, though yourself
free from delusion, are the enchanter of Maya, the deluder of all and
who are Kala (i.e. destroyer) even of Mahakala (the great destroyer of
the universe).
Sun said:
20. О Lord of Rama! Illuminated by you, we lighten the worlds.
We have bowed down to you who are self-luminous, of great reful
gence, the very light incarnate.
Sddhyas said:
21. You are the ruler (and controller) of kings, great serpents,
kings of Daityas, of Devas, of Manus, Prajapatis. We repeatedly salute
you, the Supreme King of Kings.
Vasus said:
22. Whenever there is a destruction of the proclaimed eternal Dharma
and its followers by persons (born) with Asura portions, then, every
time, you incarnate of your own accord. We bow down to the protector
of Dharma.
Caranas said:
23. Devotees sing (the praise) of the auspicious deeds of you who
have assumed innumerable forms in various poetical compositions. It
274 Skanda Purana
Savitri said:
28. At the time of the creation of the universe, you have created
by your glance Prakrti and Purusa, creating through them, these Tattvas,
(primary) substances or principles beginning with Mahat; you created
many Virajs.
29. Assuming the creatorship of the world in the form of Vairaja
(Brahma), you created Devas, Asuras, human beings, serpents, mov
ables and immovable beings, О Lord. I seek refuge in you, the first
creator.
Шх. 15.30-37 275
Durga said:
30. О omnipresent Lord! In this world those who perform your
meditation in their hearts with excessive love and devotion do not
desire for the happiness of Brahma (or of Brahma’s post), or the plea
sure in heaven or the position of being the sole sovereign lord of the
earth.
31. Having obtained this incomparable .bliss conferred per force
by you (upon them), they, the powerful ones, do not give it up even for
a moment. I bow down to such a Lord of Satvatas.
Rivers said:
32. О grantor of boons! Today we have approached you, Narayana
who protect from the fear of birth, death and Yama, people who, know
ingly or unknowingly, perform a mere bow unto you or the glorification
(or recitation) of your name, О friend of Nara.
Prthivi said:
36. I seek refuge only in Vasudeva whose face is like the full
autumnal moon, whose eyes are long like lotus-petals in autumn, who
relieves immense sufferings due to separation from 6ri (wealth).
Sarasvati said:
37. My eyes have been (as if) transformed into Cakora birds with
276 Skaruki Purana
Skanda said:
38. Thus praised by all gods, he welcomed them by his glance
only. He spoke to Sri, “O auspicious lady, give a (favourable) look to
these gods.”
39. With a pleasing look all the residents of the three worlds were
glanced with favour by her. They became prosperous as before.
40. Householders as well as renouncers, all got back their own
(previous) prosperity. Dharma and others began to move with delight
as before.
41. The Lord offered his chest as the place to 6ri. Stationing her
self there, she pervaded the three worlds with her affluence.
42. Then the Ocean (lit. ‘the mine of jewels’) as a consequence
of being the progenitor of Sri, became true to the meaning of his name
by becoming the abode (Ksaya) of all jewels.
43. There he respectfully satisfied all the guests with nectar-like
excellent food of four varieties of very good flavour.
44. With great pleasure, he presented to all (guests) including
Devas individually valuable garments, bejewelled ornaments and other
paraphernalia.
45. At that time, for the satisfaction of his son-in-law, there was
nothing that could not be given to his relatives, in the case of the
Ocean who was showering wealth like a cloud.
46. The Lord also distributed among Brahmanas all the abundant
wealth given to him as dowry, and vanished along with Sri.
47. Suras were excessively delighted by LaksmT and Narayana.
Gods including Indra, went to heaven and others went to their respec
tive homes.
48. Getting back their respective powers as before, all of them
became happy through the grace of the Lord of Kamala (LaksmT).
49. By the order of the Lord Garuda again took back Mount Mandara
to his place and fixed him there sportively.
50. О Brahmana-sage! In this way the prosperity which was lost
through the curse of a Brahmana, was got back by Indra through the
grace of Narayana.
51. О sage! He who hears this holy story of the Lord and who
extols it observing religious restraints, both of them will get riches.
Шх.15.52—H.ix.16.6 277
CHAPTER SIXTEEN
Description of Goloka1
Skanda said:
1. Ascending the peak of Meru, Narada with his divine vision
saw Sveta DvTpa and thousands of liberated souls thereof.
2. Concentrating his sight on Lord Vasudeva, the great Yogi soared
up that very moment and immediately arrived at that place.
3. Reaching the great DvTpa (continent) Sveta, Narada was de
lighted in his mind. He saw those very auspicious devotees who were
white-complcxioned and had the lustre of the moon.
4. He worshipped them with his head (bowed down), and was
mentally adored by them. Being desirous of seeing the Supreme Brah
man, he stood there embarrassed (lit. in a difficult situation).
5. Knowing that he (Narada) was a devotee exclusively of Visnu,
those Bhagavatas (‘followers of the Lord') were delighted (i.e. satis
fied) in their minds. While muttering the twelve-syllabled (Mantra of
the Lord), they spoke to him:
Narada said:
7. I am very eager to see Lord Krsna, the Supreme Brahman
himself, the ruler (of the universe). О great devotees who are dear to
him, show him (to me).
Skanda said:
8. Then one white liberated soul, being directed by Krsna in his
heart, said, “Come, I shall show you Krsna”. Saying this, he proceeded
ahead.
9. Then the highly delighted Sage Narada went up with him by
the path in the firmament, seeing the dwelling places of Devas.
10. Seeing the Seven Sages (Ursa Major) and the Polar Star, he
was not attached anywhere there. He crossed the regions known as
Maharloka, Janaloka, Tapoloka, О excellent Brahmana.
11. Then, after seeing the region of god Brahma, the sage who
followed the Sveta-mukta. found his way even through the eight sheaths
(of the universe) due to the wish of Krsna.
12. Having successively crossed (the sheaths of) the elements,
viz. earth, water, fire, wind, and ether, Ego (Aharii), Mahat and Prakrti,
each of which is ten times (larger) than the previous one,1he arrived
at the wonderful Goloka.
13. It was the glorious abode, accessible only to those exclusively
devoted to Hari. While going he saw the extensively wide and fath
omless river Viraja.12
14. It has the fragrance of sandal due to the bath taken by mul
titudes of cowherds and cowherdesses. It appeared beautiful with lotuses
white, red and blue in colour.
15. He arrived at its bank which was extensive, attractive to the
mind, full of crystal-stones. It was beautified with excellent precious
stones of white, green, red and yellow colour.
16. It was full of rows of wish-yielding trees. It was beautified
with coral-sprouts. It was adorned with mines of precious stones, like
syamantaka, sapphire and others.
17. It was extremely beautiful with steps (of the ghats) studded
with excellent gems of various kinds. It was occupied by swans, Karandava
ducks (and other aquatic birds) warbling sweetly.
18-19. Its splendid, translucent water was being drunk up by mul
titudes of wish-yielding cows, excellent elephants and horses. He crossed
it. Having crossed in a moment the heavenly river which formed a
moat round the Lord’s residence, through the will of the Lord, he arrived
at Mount &atasrnga ('having a hundred peaks’).
20. It was of gold and beautiful. It was ten million Yojanas in
height. Its extent was hundred million Yojanas and was attractive to
the mind.
21-22. It was adorned with (the growth of) thousands of wish-yield
ing trees and trees like Parijata and others, and creepers like Mallika,
Yuthika (varieties of jasmine), cloves and cardamoms. It was beauti
fied with trees such as golden plantain trees, and also multitudes of
heavenly deer, elephants and sweet-warbling birds.
23. In his castle-like abode on the beautiful peaks, he saw mind-
attracting Rasa-mandapas (i.c. halls for dance called Rasa) of the Lord
spread oqt.
24. They were surrounded by series of gardens, fragrant with flow
ers in full bloom. They looked beautiful with gem-set panelled doors
in four directions.
25. They were furnished with wonderful arched doorways, and with
thousands of pillars studded with jewels. They were provided with pillars
of plantain trees and windows with wreaths of pearls suspended thereon.
26. They were provided with auspicious Durva grass, fried grains,
unbroken rice grains and fruits. The quadrangular places therein were
sprinkled with sandal, agallochum, musk and saffron.
27. They were appealing to the heart, with various kinds of sweet
sounds of musical instruments pleasing to the ears (and hence worth
listening). He saw there crores of multitudes of cowherdesses.
28-30. They were adorned with invaluable garments and ornaments,
with bangles studded with excellent jewels, girdles, anklets, armlets
and rings. They were endowed with youth and loveliness of form and
features, and with incomparably sweet voice. Their complexion was
like that of Radha and LaksmI and (had) amorous hands. In the hall
provided with various articles of enjoyment, they were amusing them
selves and singing pleasing songs about Krsna.
31, Sage Narada saw a great forest called Vrndavana at the foot
of that mountain, О Savarni.
280 Skanda Purcina
32. It was the playground favourite with Krsna and Radha. It was
beautiful on account of the rows of wish-yielding tre^s and lakes with
blooming lotuses.
33-37. It was beautified (lit. illuminated) with trees like mango,
hog-plum, Kadamba, jujube trees, pomegranates, date-palms, betelnut
trees, orange trees, coconut palms, sandal trees, rose-apples, citron
trees, bread-fruit trees, walnut trees, plantain trees, Campaka trees,
grape-vines, golden Ketakas. All these trees were bending down with
the weight of fruits and flowers.
It was served by a gentle wind, wafting the cool and sweet fragrance
of (flowers of) Mallika, MadhavT, Kunda, cloves, and jasmine. All
around, it was wet with spring-water issuing from Sata^rnga. It was
richly endowed with the beauty of the spring season. It was endowed
with innumerable bowers, beautified with rows of lamps studded with
gems and provided with materials suitable for amorous sports.
38. О sage, it was resonant with the sound of glorifications (or
repetitions of the name) of Krsna by cowherds and cowherdesses, with
the lowing of cows and calves, the warbling of birds and jingling sound
of various orrtaments and the sound of the churning of curds.
39. It had thirty-two othfcr forests, extremely beautiful with vari
ous kinds of trees, bending down with (the weight of) fully blossomed
flowers and fruits, attracting the minds of spectators.
40-43. He was greatly delighted to sec it. He arrived at the resplen
dent city (capital) of Goloka. It was a circular citadel (full) of jewels.
It was beautified with royal roads. It appeared splendid with crores of
mansions of devotees of Krsna, with chariots studded with excellent
jewels and decorated with a number of small tinkling bells. It was
beautiful on account of crores of wonderful mansions, full of treasures
of excellent precious stones, adorned with pillars of precious stones—
all arranged in rows.
It appeared splendid with beautiful halls of sports. It was built with
excellent precious stones* and was furnished with gem-set altars or
quadrangles (lighted with) rows of lamps studded with excellent gems.
44. Its courtyard was sprinkled with liquid (mixed) with filaments
of flowers, agallochum, musk and saffron and with heaps of (vessels
containing) curds, Diirva grass, fried grains and plantain trees.
45. Auspicjpusness was caused by gold pitchers full of water and
arches constructed. In it a considerable number of elephants and horses
CHAPTER SEVENTEEN
Manifestation of Vasudeva
Skanda said:
1. О sage, he saw a more brilliant, heavenly splendour, similar
to crores of crorcs of suns arisen (and shining) simultaneously.
2. It completely pervaded all the quarters, intermediate cardinal
points, above and below. It is said to be imperishable Brahman, characte
rised by existence, knowledge and bliss.
3. It permeated both Prakrti and Pumsa and their evolutes. It was
that brilliance which persons accomplished in Yoga, crossing (in ascendance)
all the six Cakras (plexuses) within (their body), see in their heads (in
the Sahasrara-Kamala) with the grace of Vasudeva.
4. It is by his brilliance that the sun, the moon, fire and stars are
282 SkandaPuram
highly brilliant mass of refulgence that was radiated from his person.
His excellent crown was radiant with the wealth of excellent jewels.
His eyes were charming like the petals of an autumnal lotus.
17. His person was besmeared with excellent fragrant sandal
(paste). One (panel-like) side of his chest was marked with Srlvatsa.
He was sweetly playing on a flute put to his mouth with his lotus-like
beautiful arms.
18. He was being worshipped by Radha, with multitudes of her
friends, of whom Jaya, SuSIla, Lalita were prominent, and by Rama and
his consorts including Satyabhama, Kalindl (Yamuna) and JambavatT.
19. He was being served by Dharma, Vedas, all the Suns and by
Knowledge and others with their pairs of hands restrained (i.e. folded
with reverence), and by his many weapons like Sudar£ana who had
assumed a personal form.
20. He was waited upon by his prominent attendants who were
like emerald, ruby and gold in complexion, and some of whom were
white (in colour), and whose arms were shining with the discus, mace,
lotus and conch held (by them), and of whom Nanda and Sunanda were
prominent.
21. He was being worshipped by many two-handed persons in the
garb of cowherds, of whom SrTdama was the chief. They bent down (to
bow) with devotion. He was adored by Garuda, and by eight supernatu
ral powers who bowed down to him.
22. Assuming personal forms, he was served by Quiescence, Mercy,
Magnificence (Nourishment?), Contentment, Intelligence, Faith, Ac
tion, Prosperity, and by Friendliness, Forbearance, Memory and Intellect
as well.
23. On seeing that marvellous, refulgent form, all his sense-
organs were captivated by the pleasing fragrance of his form. His sight
was obstructed due to the tears of joy; his hair stood on end out of love
for him and he was filled with pleasure.
24. Overwhelmed with love, Narada prostrated himself like a staff
before him; with his hands folded in reverence, he stood before him,
looking at his face.
25. Hari honoured him who was devoted to him exclusively, and
whom he desired to see, by respectfully welcoming him (lit. by enquir
ing about his happy arrival).
26. The sage who came to himself by the taste of the nectar (in
the form) of the Lord’s speech, and who was extremely delighted by
his sight, praised him devoutly.
284 SkandaPurana
Narada said:
27. Be victorious, О SrTkrsna, Lord Narayana, the master of the
world, Vasudeva, who abide in all,1and are always dear to your exclu
sive devotees.
28. Your very wonderful feet are worthy of being worshipped by
Radhika and Kamala. You are the highest beatitude, and the supreme
resort to those who aspire to it.
29. You are the eternal (element) of eternal souls; the soul, the
sentience of sentient beings; beyond the perishables and imperishables.
You are the Supreme Brahman, О Hari.
30. The extreme purity and supernatural power as is obtained by
highest devotion to you, is not achieved by men with other means
including penance.
31. Only the divine moonlight of your feet is capable of imme
diately destroying the thick darkness that abides in the hearts of people
desirous of final liberation, О noble master.
32. О venerable Lord, the cause of all causes, you are proclaimed
as the only one who should be worshipped, propitiated and realized by
the Vedas.
33. The auspicious, blissful, bright refulgence that abides in each
and every pore (of your skin), is more brilliant than the light of a crore
of moons.
34. (You) the supreme attributcless person, always dwell in this
imperishable, attributcless, residence called Amrta, which is a mass
of lustre.
35. By the power of your propitiation your devotees become free
from Kala who strikes terror into the universe, and from the great fear
of Maya.
36. For a resort I have approached you who are the master of the
universe, and the soul abiding in all, the all-pervading Brahman, the
great imperishable Purusa.
37. О Lord of Devas, it behoves you to confer that favour whereby
my devotion unto your lotus-feet will always be firm.
Skanda said:
38. The Supreme God who was thus devoutly praised by the
celestial sage (Narada), spoke in nectarine words, delighting the sage.
1. This derivation from 'Jvas ‘to dwell’ is accepted by Puranas like Visnu and
Brahma-vcuvarta
Ш х. 18.1-11 285
CHAPTER EIGHTEEN
Incarnations of Vasudeva
1. The order of incarnations as given in the text is as follows: (I) Divine Boar,
(2) Fish, (3) Tortoise, (4) Man-Lion, (5) Vamana, (6) Kapila, (7) Datta, (6)
Vrsabha, (7) Bhargava Rama, (8) Dalarathi Rama, (9) Krsna, (10) Krsna Dvaipayana
(Vyasa), (11) Buddha, (12) Kalki.
n.ix. 18.25-38 287
25. Becoming (incarnating as) Datta, the son of AnasGya and Atri,
1 shall teach the science called AnvTksikT (i.e. Nyaya) to Prahlada and
to Yadu (Sahasrarjuna?), О Vidhi.
26. Incarnating (with the name) Vrsabha, the son of MerudevT and
Nabhi, I shall propagate the ancient Dharma called Paramahamsya1
(i.e. pertaining to Paramahamsas—the highest sect of recluses).
27. In Treta, I shall become Rama, a scion of Bhrgu family. I
shall annihilate Ksatriyas who have transgressed the limits (of moral
ity etc.) and have taken to bad ways.
28-31. When the period of junction between Treta and Dvapara (i.e.
Treta coming to an end and Dvapara about to start) arrives, I shall
become Rama, son of Dasaratha and KauSalya. LaksmT, with the name
STta, will be the daughter of Janaka. I shall marry her after breaking
the big bow of Siva. I shall then kill in battle along with his brothers
the terrible king of Raksasas (Ravana), enemy of Devas and sages and
abductor of STta. Then great sages including ValmTki will sing vari
ously of his (that is my) exploits, on hearing which there will be
destruction of sins.
32-33. When the junction of Dvapara and Kali comes to a close, for
the sake of annihilation of Asuras who become burden to the earth, and
for protecting righteous people, I, Krsna, called Vasudeva, will be born
of Vasudeva and DevakT in the city of Mathura. Similarly Saiikarsana
alias Balarama, Pradyumna and Aniruddha (i.e. all the Vyuhas of the
Paficaratras) will be born in the family of Yadu.
34. Radha will be the daughter of the cowherd Vrsabhanu and I
shall sport with her in Vrndavana, О Lotus-bom One (Brahma).
35. LaksmT will be born as the daughter of BhTsmaka by name
RukminT. After defeating kings in a battle, I shall marry her.
36. After killing Asuras, the enemies of Dharma and of kings who
were haunted by them, and by establishing Dharma, I shall make the
earth free from burden.
37. If the mind of a person is in any way devoted to me, I shall
take him to the supreme position of Brahman.
38. After establishing righteousness on the earth, and bringing
about the annihilation of Yadu’s race, I shall then vanish from the1
1. This Purana has a soft comer for Jainism. He equates Jaina ascetics with
the Brahmanical Paramahariisas, the highest order of Sannyasa.
288 SkandaPurcim
Skanda said:
51. On hearing the speech of the Lord, the excellent sage Narada,
1. Mbh, BhP testify to Krsna’s death and the cremation of his physical body.
By the time of this Purana, Krsna is too great to die as a human being. He
‘vanishes’ from this world.
2. The author’s prejudice against Buddhism is probably due to its challenging
position to Brahmanism at the time of this Purana.
3. Cf. BG IV.7
0.ix. 18.52-62 289
(Narada said:)
52. О Master, by your very vision all my desire is fulfilled. I
regard this (i.e. your audience) as extremely difficult to get for all
embodied beings.
53. Hence nothing except directly seeing you, your devotee and
this your residence (called) Amrta, is desired by me as worth obtain
ing.
54. Compared with this, there is nothing else anywhere in this
Brahmanda that is difficult to be obtained, and this I can request of
you who are pleased with me here.
55. The happiness in the other world, which is obtained by per
formance of Vedic rituals pertaining to Devas and ancestors, is also
perishable.
56. I do not wish that insignificant happiness to be greater than
you, О Lord. I beg only one boon desired by me from you who are the
most prominent among bestowers of boons.
57. May my intellect be always eager for singing the excellences
of you, as well as that of your devotees, and may it have ever-increas
ing love and devotion unto you.
Skanda said:
58. Promising him ‘so be it' to what was requested by him, Krsna
gave him a great lute useful in singing and spoke to him again.
63. Just as devoted, chaste wives bring good husbands under their
power by their virtuous qualities, in the same way my devotees bring
me under their power.
64. I follow them along with Sri, as if I am subservient to them.
Wherever they are, I am present there.
65. О divine sage, know the truth that to those who desire libera
tion, I can be attained in this world only through association with
saintly persons, and by no other means.
66. Whenever men resort to me, they are immediately liberated
from bondage to Maya and the state of being a JTva (i.e. a soul subject
to Samsara).
67. With whatever feeling or inclination of mind a man seeks
refuge in me, he gets the happiness as desired by him, but he does not
revert to Samsara, as in the case of others.
Skanda said:
68. Thus addressed by the Lord, Narada who had obtained the
desired favour, bowed down to him and returned with his eyes full of
tears.
69. While singing with the lute, he saw the Sveta-Mukta (the
liberated soul from §veta-Dv!pa, his guide) going in front of him as
before, and he (Narada) followed him, О eminent Brahmana.
70. Immediately after arriving at Sveta-dvTpa, he bowed down to
them (all) and returned. Then Narada arrived quickly at Meru.
71. From Meru he proceeded to Mount Gandhamadana. From the
sky he quickly alighted at ViSala Badari (BadarikaSrama).
CHAPTER NINETEEN
Skanda said:
1-4. Then he saw the two divine, ancient, excellent sages perform
ing a great penance. They were established in their Atmans and were
great performers of religious observances. By their refulgence they
superseded the Sun who illuminates all the world. They were characterised
by Srivatsa and were worthy of worship. They had circular mass of
Шх. 19.5-14 291
Narada said:
11. Venerable Sir! It is through your favour that 1 saw the Su
preme Lord Vasudeva staying in his imperishable residence.
12. Being sent by him to serve you both, I have come here only.
I shall always stay with you remaining exclusively devoted to him.
15. That the Supreme Person, the Lord of divine form* is very
difficult to be seen, is the purport of a true statement of mine, О
Narada.
16. None other than his devotee is more dear to him in this world.
Hence he manifested himself to you, О excellent Brahmana.
17. His person is enveloped by a mass of lustre. His mysterious
form transcends Gunas. Complete bliss constitutes his form. He is forever
pure and imperishable.
18. He does not have a form, complexion, age of the ordinary type
(or derived from Prakrti). Whatever he has is divine including his weapons.
He alone is the highest resort of devotees exclusively attached to him.
19. Devotion to Vasudeva is performed by persons who have re
alized the one-ness of Atman and Brahman and who have desisted from
Gunas. He is endowed with such qualities.
20. Who is capable of describing the greatness of this Supreme
Soul, who is the master of incomprehensible, infinite powers, О great
sage?
21-22. He is the Soul of souls, imperishable Soul, unsoiled and pure
like the firmament, visible only to persons endowed with divine vision,
who is pure existence, the Purusa born of Vasudeva. He is endowed
with all auspicious qualities, attributeless, the master of all rulers. He,
the knower of Brahman, the master is knowable through superior know
ledge. He should be propitiated.
23. He who pleases that Lord of divine form with penance solely
devoted to him, and pious devotion, is the most blessed.
24. Therefore, О divine sage, you also propitiate him with exclu
sive pious devotion, and perform penance here for some time, О dear
one.
25. With your soul extremely purified with penance, you will (be
in a position to) know truly all the glory of the Lord, the great soul,
as will be described by me.
26. Know that penance is the means of attaining all objectives
(and) his heart, О sage. The Lord is not won over by a person who has
not performed extreme penance.
Skanda said:
27. Addressed thus by revered Nara-Narayana, he (Narada) was
pleased. Being desirous of performing penance, the highly intelligent
one spoke.
n.ix.20.1-10 293
CHAPTER TWENTY
Narada said:
1. О Lord! Expound to me the Ekanta Dharma as approved by
you, whereby the Universal Soul, Vasudeva, gets always pleased.
Narada asked:
6. I have a desire to know separately the characteristics of Svadharma
(personal duties) from you who are the source of Sastras. It behoves you
to relate them to me.
7. You alone are the root (source of origin) of all Vedas, Agamas
and Sastras including the eternal Dharma, О good Lord.
8. You alone are the Lord Vasudeva incarnate, who is beyond the
perishable (objects). You, a store of mercy, stay here for the welfare
of all beings.
9. God Brahma and others who are other than you, are controlled
by their respective natural Gunas. They do not know Dharma and other
(related things) as they truly are. Hence narrate it (to me).
Skanda said:
10. Lord Narayana, the omniscient son of Dharma, who was thus
294 Skanda Purana
asked by the Divine sages (Narada), narrated to him in due order, the
personal Dharma etc.
Sri Narayana said:
11. The moral conduct is different for (different) Varnas (castes)
and stages of life. That is called Svadharma and is general as well as
special.
12. At first listen to the Dharma (duty) common to all men.1Non*
injury (Ahimsa) is proclaimed to be the first supreme duty.
13. (Obscure) Among one’s main moral inclinations what is called
absence of ill will even of the mental type, in a provocative situation,
towards any living being, is known as Ahimsa or non-injury.
14. Truth is that speech whereby no injury is caused to living
beings. Penance is characterised by the diminution (reduction in) of
the enjoyment (of objects) permitted by the scriptures.
15. Purification is of two types, external and internal. Non-taking
of what belongs to others either in his absence or by deceit (is non
stealth).
16-21. Proper celibacy; restraint of the passions or desires, greed
and anger; gladly donating wealth to a suitable person; satisfaction
with what one gets through luck; total renunciation of injury at holy
places or in sacrifices and other religious acts or for obtaining the four
ends of human life either for one’s self or for others; avoidance of acts
which cause fall from one’s caste; restraint of (movement of) hands
and feet, stomach (i.e. eating), the organ of generation (sex) and speech;
avoidance of wine and meat and all vices; abstaining from adultery;
observance of the traditional good practices of one’s family; obser
vance of fast along with the (prescribed ten restraints) on the eleventh
day of the dark and bright half of the month; proper observance of the
specific Vrata of the birthday of Hari; straightforwardness; service of
saints; taking food after its distribution (as per prescribed rules); acts
of devotion unto the Lord—These are duties common to all men.2
1. Cf. ahimsa sat\am asteyam saucam
indriyamgrahah /
evam samdsikam dharmam
cdturvarnye bravln manuh //
(Manu X.63)
2. There is a close similarity in the items included in Sadharana Dharmas
(duties common to all men) in ancient texts like Vi$nu Dharma Sutra, II. 16-17;
Apastamba Dh.S. 1.8.23-6; Mbh, Santi 60.7-8,297.24-25; Brahma P. 114.16-18. The
speciality of our Pancaratra text is the inclusion of the Ekada$f Vrata and ob
servance of the birthday of Нал (e.g Gokula Astami).
Шх.20.22-33 295
taxes, except from Brahmanas, and from other sources, after keeping
contented all the subjects according to the exigencies of*time and
place.
34. Even in emergency, the service of a low person is totally
prohibited to Ksatriyas and Brahmanas, as that reduces one’s lustre.
35. In the case of a VaiSya the mode of livelihood is spoken (as
consisting of) agriculture, trade and commerce and tending of cows and
lending money on interest as the fourth, but in emergency he may
follow the $udra mode of livelihood.
36. A $udra should maintain himself on the money earned by service
rendered to twice-born castes. In emergency he should follow the mode
of livelihood of artisans etc.
37. When all of them become free after averting the emergency,
they should perform the expiation proper for them and again take up
their respective main vocations as means of livelihood.
38. (Persons belonging to) the four castes should associate them
selves with saintly people and never with bad people. Association with
the good leads to liberation, while company with evil persons leads to
hell.
39. Those who, having subdued erotic passion, anger, taste for
flavours, pride, jealousy, hypocrisy, are the devotees of Visnu, are regarded
as saintly persons.
40. Those who are addicted to sexual pleasure in the company of
women, greedy after wealth, murderous, self-conceited through hyprocrisy
and who pose to be devotees, are bad people.
41. Having ascertained that by nature Asura type of prosperity is
(found) among bad people and the Deva type of affluence is (seen)
among the good, good and saintly persons should be resorted to and
served by those desirous of happiness.
42. The intellect (of a person) assumes a shape in accordance
with the kind of £astras (scriptures) and people he associates with.
Hence no association should be had with bad people (and heretic scriptures).
43. To persons who like to render service to saintly persons, any
type of superior affluence or excellent power or divine faculties are not
unobtainable through dint of their power.
44. Men who, though established in their Dharma, bear malice to
saintly persons, shall never attain a happy state or beatitude anywhere
by performing any act.
45. If devotees of Visnu who are devoted to the great worship (of
the god) bear hatred towards saintly persons, he (Visnii) will never be
Шх.20.46-57 297
1. This deification of Brahmanas is found in Vedic times also, e.g. ete vai
devah pratyakjam yad brahmanah (Taittinya Samhita 1.7.3.1). Also cf. Satapatha
XII.4.46; Tait. Aranyaka 11.15.
298 Skanda Puratia
CHAPTER TWENTYONE
1. The practice of residence with the teacher away from home was current
even in the Brahmana period (vide the story of NabhanedTstha in Aitareya Brahmana
22 9; also cf Satapatha Brahmana XI.5.4.1-17).
2. For principal duties of a celibate see HD II.i, pp. 30S ff.
Шх.21.11—Шх.22.1 299
CHAPTER TWENTYTWO
Duties of Householders
Sri Narayana said:
1. One who desires to become a householder should (first) pay
his tuition-fees according to his capacity. After paying the fees, and
with his (preceptor’s) permission, he should perform the Samavartana
300 Skanda Ригана
28. Wherever incarnations and stay of Hari have taken place, they
are specially the most sacred places on the earth.
29a. Even if an insignificant religious act is performed at these
places, it gives a thousand times more merit.
29b-32. 1 shall now narrate to you the times which enhance the
merit (of the act done), Listen to it, О Narada;
Two Ayanas (the period of Sun’s transition from one solstice to
another), Visuva ( the first point of Aries or Libra into which the Sun
enters at the vernal or autumnal equinox), the eclipse of the Sun and
the Moon, the days without a tithi, Vyafipata and all constellations
from Sravana, all the twelfth and eleventh days (Tithis), the first days
of Manvantaras and Yugas—All these are auspicious days. Also the
new-moon day, Vaidhrti, the full-moon days accompanied by the con
stellation of the month and four Astaka days,1the day with the constellation
under which one is bom and days of celebration of the birth of Hari
(the eighth day in the dark half of Sravana).
33. Those times are auspicious when there take place the sacred
ceremonies and consecration of wife and children or times of getting
prosperity and of finding a person worthy of receiving gifts.
34. Worship of Devas, manes, Brahmanas and saintly persons
according to one’s capacity, sacred bath, religious gifts, muttering of
Mantras, yield infinite fruits.
35. Just as water supplied to roots reaches all branches, so the
Lord himself is the worthy recipient, giving satisfaction to all, О Narada.
36. Those Brahmanas are worthy of receiving (religious gifts) who
are satisfied by non-violence and Vedic learning, who hold in their
heart Visnu with proper religious devotion.
37. Know that the devotees of the Lord who are exclusively at
tached to him and release those who are bound (in Samsara), are worthy
recipients and the Lord himself abides in them.
38. A rich person should get constructed massive temples of Visnu.
He should also provide means of subsistence for the unbroken conti
nuity of the worship (of God).
39. He should prepare reservoirs of water and gardens for the sake
of Visnu. He should satisfy saints and Brahmanas with rich food of
good flavour.
40. He should according to his capacity perform Vaisnava type of
I . The 8th day in the dark half of M3rga€Trsa (acc. to Mvalayana Grhya Sutra
11.4.1) or of three months, viz. Pau$a, Magha and Phalguna is knovto as Адока.
II.ix.22.41-51 303
1. Other old Purines and Smrtis prescribe the periods of time for which Pitfs
are gratified by flesh of certain animals (vide Yajnavalkya 1.258-261). For other
references vide HD IV, p 423. SkP being a late Purina strongly disapproves of
non-vegetarian food in Sraddha.
30* SkandaPurdna
1. For duties of widows cf HD II.i, pp.583-87. The extracts from Smftis and
other works show that the position of Hindu widows was unenviable till recent
times.
H.ix.22.64-74 306
CHAPTER TWENTYTHREE
bear (grow) without cutting or trimming hair on the head and the body,
mustaches, beard and nails and unscrubbed teeth.1
11. He should bathe without massaging his limbs (for cleansing),
and should sleep on bare ground. He should perform penance according
to the exigencies of place, time, his power and state of health.
12. Forest-hermits are spoken of as belonging to four classes, viz.
Phenapa, Audumbara, Valakhilya and Vaikhanasa.12
13. One should according to one’s (physical) capacity stay in the
forest (i.e. continue to be a forest-hermit) for twelve, eight, four, two
or one year, and then take to the stage of Samnyasa (recluse).
14. If one has intense Vairagya (aversion against objects of worldly
pleasures), the (adoption of) Samnyasa is beneficial. Otherwise a Brahmana
should stay in the forest (i.e. continue the stage of forest-hermit) throughout
(the rest of) his life.
15. After renunciation as per injunctions, one who has (entered
and) established oneself in the fourth ASrama (stage of life), he should
wear a small piece (strip) of cloth to cover the privities, and a patched
garment.
16. He should possess a (religious) staff, a waterpot of gourd and
a piece of cloth for straining water.3
17. A recluse should not beg alms in the house of the same person
everyday. He should never be longing for flavourous food. He should
take food once (per day) and that too limited (in quantity).
18. A mendicant should generally accept alms from a person who
is a forest-hermit. His (mendicant’s) mind gets purified by the ex
tremely pure food of the forest-hermit.
19. Even if he has smelt meat and wine, he should perform the
expiatory observance called paraka. He should get purified by observ
ing purificatory rites. He should not even touch Sudras and other (defiled)
persons.
20. He should always perform the worship of Visnu and eat what
has been offered to Visnu (i.e. offer that food first to Visnu before
eating it). He should mutter the twelve-syllabled (от namo bhagavate
vasudevaya) or eight-syllabled (от narayanaya namah) Mantra of Visnu.
21. He should not utter falsehood. He should not be a story-teller
1. Manu VI.6.
2. See Vaikhanasa VIII.7 and Brhatpara&ara Ch XI, p. 290. The Puranic author
seems to have borrowed from both.
3. Cf Manu VI.43-44; also Mitak$ara on Yajhavalkya III.58.
308 Skanda Ригала
1. Kuficakas live in their own house or in a hut built by their sons, and beg
alms at the house of their sons or relatives.
Bahiidas have three staffs, a water-jar, ochre-coloured garments and beg alms
at seven houses
Hamsas stay not more than one night in a village, five nights in a town for alms
or subsist on cow's urine or dung or perform Candrayana penance.
Paramahamsas slay under a tree or in a burning-ground. They either wear a
garment or are naked. They bear (with equanimity) pairs like pleasure-pain. They
treat all alike. Theirs is the highest stage of Sannyasa. (Vide Vaikhanasa Sutra
VIII. 9)
Шх.23.32-43 309
CHAPTER TWENTYFOUR
24. In that refulgent light brilliant like the simultaneous rising of ten
thousand suns, there he saw Vasudeva of beautiful, lustrous, dark form.
25. That Supreme Ruler had four arms holding (in each) an iron
mace, a lotus, a conch and a discus. He wore a yellow garment and
was adorned with a big crown set with jewels (and other ornaments).
26. He was resorted to by four-armed attendants like Nanda, Tarksya
(Garuda) and others, by eight super-natural powers (like Anima etc.)
and by six types of good luck with their palms folded in reverence.
27. Bowing down to the great Lord who sat along with Sri on the
throne, God Brahma, delighted in mind, stood before him with folded
palms.
28. The Lord spoke to him: “O Brahman, I am pleased with you
due to your penance. As you are dear to me, ask for any boon desired
by you, from me.”
29. Addressed by him thus, Brahma knowing him to be his direc
tor to perform penance, entreated him (to grant) the boon desired by
him regarding the creation of the universe.
30. “Obeisance to you, О Lord! Give me the power to create. Do
also to me such favour as will not bind me in that (act of creation).”
31. Then the Lord said: “Your desire will be fulfilled. Create
subjects by conceiving through meditation your identity with me, Vairaja.
If any task is not possible for you to accomplish, I should be remem
bered. I am the donor of desired objects.”
32. After saying Visnu vanished. Brahma, by meditating on his
identity with Vairaja, saw personally all the regions (or subjects) which
were merged formerly.
33. Having secured the creative power, Brahma set his mind on
creation. In the meanwhile, Aditya (Sun-god) full of the lustre of Brahman,
manifested himself.
34. Having established him at the centre of Brahmanda (universe),
he created by his mind which was extremely pure due to penance and
devotion, the four primeval sages, the four Sanas (viz. Sanaka, Sanandana,
Sanatkumara, Sanatana).
35. He ordered them, “Create subjects”. Those who were promi
nent perpetual celibate (sages), did not accept his order. The creator
of the universe got angry with them.
36. From the forehead of angry Brahma was born Rudra full of the
Guna called Tamas. Controlling his anger, he mentally created Prajapatis
(presiders over the subjects).
37. (They were as follow:) Marlci, Atri, Pulaha, Pulastya, Bhrgu,
Il.ix.24.38-52 313
etc. offered by Daityas, Raksasas, Pisacas and others who eagerly engaged
in propitiating them.
53. Similarly to the Saktis created from Savitri, (he allotted) eatables
fit for sages, such as food and herbs offered in sacrifices by sages, the
propitiators of those Saktis.
54. To Saktis born of Sri, (he fixed) Payasa (rice boiled in milk),
ghee, radish etc. offered by Devas, Asuras and human beings who are
engaged in propitiating them.
55-56. Then the Lord of Prajapatis addressed all his subjects:
“Devas and Pitrs are to be worshipped by sacrifices consisting (of the
offerings) of Havya and Kavya. These (deities) will fufill all your
desired objectives. Those who will not worship them will surely go to
hell.”
57. In this way, the moral law was fixed by Brahma, entered into
by Narayana. Hence ritualistic acts pertaining to Devas and Pitrs should
always be performed as per injunctions.
58. Then Brahma appointed the heads of those particular castes
and categories as well as Manus for the protection of the bounds of
moral law of all.
59. О sage! It is in this way that this diverse creation takes place
in every Kalpa by Vairaja in the form of Brahma, by the will of Vasudeva.
60. Just as the knowledge, Vedas, Sastras and ritualistic rites were
in the previous Kalpa, in the next Kalpa similar were all Dharmas and
the persons authorized and functionaries.1
61. He who is called Visnu is also of the nature of (possessed by)
Vairaja-Purusa. He observes all the boundaries and sustains (by) nour
ishing all the worlds.
62. When the limits (of moral behaviour etc.) which are being
observed by Manu and others are broken (violated) by Asuras, who can
assume any form they like, then Vasudeva, being prayed to by God
Brahma and others, manifests himself on the earth.
63. It is not possible to count the number of the Lord’s incarna
tions past and future even by experts in calculation.
64. The manifestation of the noble Lord is for the protection of
Saddharma (righteousness, moral order), Devas and saintly persons, for
killing those who trouble them and for the welfare of all beings.2
I. Cf BG XIII.2, 3.
316 SkandaPurana
CHAPTER TWENTYFIVE
1. Though these are the tour Pralayas (destructions of the world) as described
in other Puranas, the concepts of Nitya and Atyantika Pralayas are a bit different
here.
2. VV 5- 18a describe the Nitya-pralaya. V 13 mentions abduction of wife and
sister by Mlecchas.
ILix.25.15-24 317
My farm was rich with crops, but Alas, it is blighted by the inten
sity of winter! My cows are taken away by robbers! Everything in my
possession (property) is plundered!
I am severely punished by the king! I am severely beaten by my
enemy! What should I do? Whom can I tell that my mother was adul
terous?
Alas, the enemy abducted my wife today! I shall drink poison. Alas,
my sister is carried away (forcibly) by Mlecchas! Alas, my enemy, the
penetrator of my weak points and secrets, has arrived!
1 am dying of the excruciating pain of fever. Alas, these are the
messengers of Yama, the god of Death!”
Everywhere people are seen lamenting like this.
15. Every moment undergoing birth and death of their bodily states,
in the course of time men suffer from pain originating from themselves
(i.e. as a result of their own Karmas).
16. The pain of death at the end of the pre-destined period (of
sufferings and life) is unparalleled. Even after death, extreme suffer
ing—torture inflicted by the god of Death—is undergone.
17. Getting birth again and again in the species of beings such as
viviparous, germinating ones (plants etc.), sweat-bom, egg-born, ac
cording to one's Karmas one dies with pain.
18a. Thus far the Nitya Pralaya (daily destruction) has been de
scribed to you with minute observation. You should understand it.
18b. Now, О sage, I shall describe to you the Pralaya called Naimittika
(periodic).1
19. The Destruction that is occasioned by the Night of the Creator
of the universe (Brahma) is called the Naimittika (periodic) Dissolu
tion or Destruction. It occurs on everyday (of God Brahma).
20. О sage, the day of the Creator of the universe consits of one
thousand Caturyugas (groups of four Yugas). His night is also of that
duration. Both together (the day and night of Brahma) are called Kalpa.
21. In each day of God Brahma, there are fourteen Manus, the
protectors of bounds of Dharma, О Brahmana.
22-24. The first Manu is Svayambhuva, then (the next Manu is )
Svarocisa. Next to him (consecutively) are Uttama, Tamasa, then Raivata
and Caksusa, Sraddhadeva (i.e. Vaivasvata), Savarni, Bhautya, Raucya,
then (Manu) called Brahma-Savarni, Rudra-Savarni, then (Manu) named
Meru-Savarni and the last is Daksa-Savarni2.
1. VV l8b-45 describe Naimittika Pralaya (caused by the night of God Brahma).
2 The list slightly differs from that in VaP and PE (p. 403).
318 Skanda Purnrui
40-42. Those who have realized the identity of Brahman and Self,
and have brought under control the three Gunas and propitiate Vasudeva
by Nivrtti Dharma, make their residence in the four worlds of Mahar
etc. and stay there as they please, praising Vairaja.
43. Lord Narayana, meditating on the form of the Supreme Soul
called Vasudeva. lies absorbed in Yogic sleep.
44. At the end of (Brahma’s) night, all those beings residing in
his belly (during the Pralaya period) along with Brahma are produced
again as before, authorized for the same Karma as before.
45. In this way, the Pralaya called Naimittika (‘periodic’)
characterised by the destruction of the three worlds has been narrated
to you. Now I shall describe the Prakrta Pralaya (Destruction of
Prakrti or Primordial Nature)1.
46. What has been described (up till now) is a Kalpa. Three hundred
and sixty periods of that duration constitute the year of God Brahma.
47. Fifty of them (Brahma’s year) constitute a Parardha; two
such Parardhas constitute the life-span of Brahma. When the period
of time called Para (Brahma’s complete span of life) is completed,
there takes place a great annihilation.
48. After withdrawing his form called Viraj by the Rudra form
of destruction, Vairaja desires to go (i.e. revert) to his supreme attributeless
form.
49. At that time, there is a drought (a rain-less period) of a hun
dred years as before (at the time of Nitya Pralaya). The fire of destruction
born of Sarikarsana (Sesa) completely burns down Brahmanda (the uni
verse).
50. Then the extremely terrible clouds called Samvartaka pour
down torrents of water, (each) as big as a pestle, for a hundred years,
О sage.
51. Then by the will of Vasudeva, there is a complete destruction
of all the evolutes of Prakrti beginning with Mahat and ending with
Visesas (i.e. peculiar attributes distinguishing Dravyas).
52. The (elemental) Water at first ‘swallows’ up smell (Gandha)
which is a special quality of the (element) Earth. The Earth devoid of
(its special quality) smell, becomes dissolved.
53. The (elemental) Fire swallows Rasa (liquid form), a special
quality of Water, which thereby merges therein. The (elemental) Wind
1. VV 45-58 describe the Prakrta Pralaya i.e. destruction of Prakrti (the original
cause of the universe) itself. It takes place after the life-span of God BrahmS
terminates.
320 SkandaPurana
‘devours’ Rupa (colour), the special quality of Fire (Tejas) and it (the
elemental Fire) merges therein.
54. The (elemental) Akasa (Ether) then swallows up touch which
is a special quality of Wind. Wind then calms down (and ceases to
exist). Ether stands uncovered.
55. Bhutadi (the origin of Bhutas) swallows sound, the distinguishing
quality of Ether and Ether merges therein.
The Indriyas (i.e. organs of sense and action) become merged in
the Taijasa Ahamkara.
56. In the Sattvika type of Ahamkara, the deities and manas get
merged. That which is produced or evolved from a thing gets merged
in that, i.e. its source of origin.
57. The three types of Ahamkara (produced from the three Gunas
i.e. Sattva, Rajas and Tamas) are dissolved in the principle called
Mahat. That becomes merged in Pradhana which in turn is dissolved
in Purusa. It is then dissolved in the Mula Prakrti (Primordial Prakrti).
58. This Pralaya called Prakrtika is (thus) described. In this, by
the will of Hari, the masters of living beings become concealed in
Avyakta (i.e. the unmanifest primordial principle from which all the
phenomena of the material world are developed).
59. When Maya, Purusa and Kala get merged in the imperishable
refulgence by the Lord’s will, then the Lord alone exists (without a
second). That Pralaya is called Atyantika (Final or Absolute), О Narada.1
60. All this is rendered like Asat (non-being) by the four kinds of
dissolutions by the power called Kala (Time) of the Lord. Non-attach
ment or dislike of it is called Vairagya.
61. Knowing that all gods other than Vasudeva are subject to Kala
(Destruction) and Maya, and giving up liking (devotion) for them, conti
nuous service with deep affection to him exclusively, is known as Bhakti
(devotion).
62-63. He who serves him respectfully with his mind exclusively
devoted to him, with the nine Bhdvas12 (‘types of devotions’), viz. lis
tening (to the stories etc. of the Lord), glorifying (the Lord), remembering
(him), bowing to the Lord’s feet, worshipping (him), paying obeisance
(to him), servitude, (establishing) friendship with him and (complete)
self-surrender, is called a Bkakta (a devotee).
64. The Devotion that is accompanied with three chief duties
CHAPTER TWENTYSIX
Skanda said:
1. Having heard the exposition of the Ekanta Dharma as done by
the Lord ( Narayana), Narada, who was greatly delighted in mind, asked
him again.
Narada said:
2. О Master, having heard the Ekantika Dharma as has been
1. VV 64ff. give the concept of Ekanta Dharma or Bhagavata Dharma. For the
accomplishment of this Dharma Krirya-yoga is essential.
322 SkandaPurana
I . This is a Pancaratra work and the procedure of Kriya is. Agamic. Hence
initiation (DIksa) is essential to all irrespective of caste and sex.
II.ix.26.13-24 323
CHAPTER TWENTYSEVEN
1. This chapters and the following describe in detail the Agamic procedure of
Visnu worship. This describes the ‘city* of Radha and Kr$na in which dwell gods,
goddesses, demi-gods, planets etc. Their person, dress, vehicles etc. are graphically
described. Here Siva in the half-man-half-woman form (Ardha-nariSvara) is re
garded as Krsna's attendant. All these form the paraphernalia of RadhS and Krsna
and a representation of their city.
326 Skanda Purana
19. In between the ‘town’ and the lotus, various kinds of flowers
(should be spread). In the middle of it Srikrsna with Radhika to his
left should be installed.
20. At the back of this (pair of) Radha-Krsna (the worshipper)
should then install four-handed Sankarsana, fair in complexion, wear
ing blue garments, holding an umbrella (over him).
21. On the right side of the Lord one should install four-handed
Pradyumna, dark in complexion like a cloud, and wearing yellow gar
ments, standing with a Chowrie in his hand.
22. On the left side of Hari red-garmented Aniruddha of dark-blue
complexion like a sapphire, be placed, with a Chowrie in his hand.
23. These three should be adorned with various kinds of orna
ments, wearing crowns studded with invaluable jewels, (appearing)
beautiful due to youthfulness.
24. Then, in a serial order, the incarnations of Hari should be
placed in the eight filaments (petals of the lotus?). A pair of incarna
tions should be placed in each, (thus placing) sixteen incarnations in
the eight Kesaras.
25-26. At the front of the eastern filament the worshipper should
install Vamana and Buddha, both of them dark as a cloud (in complex
ion), compassionate, quiescent, celibate, wearing sacred thread and
white garments, holding a full-bloomed lotus in the right hand, the left
hand indicating Abhaya (protection from fear) by its position.
27-28. In the South-East comer, one should place Kalkin and Para£urama.
Kalkin has a sword in hand, while the other holds an axe. Both of them
should be represented as fair in complexion, red-eyed, having matted
hair, wearing the sacred thread and white garments, who have given
up anger against great enemies* (rather: great warriors who have given
up their anger*).
29-31. One should install Hayagriva and Varaha in the Southern
Kesara. Hayagriva should be horse-headed with a human body, with
four hands holding in each conch and others (Visnu’s weapons). He
should be of golden complexion and wearing divine white-coloured
garment.
Varaha hould be boar-faced with human body. He should have four
hands holding in each a conch, a discus, an iron pestle and a lotus. He
♦In Devanagari script 4ya* (*l) and ‘tha* (*t) are mistaken for each other due
to close resemblance. Hence the reading maharayau be better emended as maharathau
"great warriors’. The line 4tyakta krodha-maharathau' should be interpreted as
"great warriors who have given up their anger’.
328 SkandaPurana
from fear and with the other he confers boons. He is red in complexion.
He is to be made as occupying a golden chariot yoked with eight horses
of greenish and yellowish colour.
99. In the North-East corner the Planet Guru (Jupiter) should be
installed. He is golden in complexion and white in dress. He is two-
handed, lotus-eyed, holding a staff and water-pot of gourd (in his hands).
He is seated in an excellent gold chariot yoked with eight white horses.
100-101. In this manner, the worshipper should install all the Ahga-
devatas of the Lord in due order in places within the interior of the city
(formed) in the pericarp (of the lotus). He should install the Vibhava-
type of forms of the Anga-deities of Vasudeva. He should install them
as betelnuts or flowers and unbroken rice-grains.
CHAPTER TWENTYEIGHT
ing her symmetrical ears; having a nose like (the beak of) a parrot;
young in age (below fifteen years); with eyes like the young^pne of a
deer; with plump, protruding thick breasts; with a slender waist and big
buttocks; adorned with a girdle set with jewels; beautified with vari
ous heavenly (or brilliant) ornaments; with her face like a full-blown
lotus, beaming with smile; whose excellent hands are shining by gem-
set rings, armlets and bangles etc. (all set with jewels); whose lotus-feet
are adorned with tingling anklets and Hamsukas (an ornament for the
ankles shaped like a goose’s foot); on whose broad forehead are shining
a Tilaka mark of saffron and an ornament of the forehead; with lips
(red) like a Bimba fruit; with excellent cheeks; with her braids of hair
decorated with jasmine flowers; gazing with love at the Lord; holding
a lotus in her hand.
33b. After having meditated upon Radhika of the above descrip
tion, one should worship the Lord along with her.
CHAPTER TWENTYNINE
1. They are 'apyayasva* (RV 1.91.1b), ‘dadhikravano* (RV IV. 39.6), ‘ghrtam
mimikje' (RV И.З.П), *madhu vata\ (RV 1.90.6), ‘svaduh pavasva (RV IX.
85.6). The first word of these Mantras suggests the material used for bathing.
Beyond this tenuous relation, the meanings of the mantras show their irrelevance.
Purinika Mantras used for this are meaningful.
338 SkandaPurana
16. After showing the mirror, he should worship him with garlands
of flowers (round his neck) and chaplets or garlands of flowers adorning
the head and with one thousand sprouts of TulasI leaves.
17. One should worship the Lord with a TulasI leaf or a flower
uttering (with every leaf or flower) a name of Visnu in the dative case
followed by namah (‘obeisance to’) (e.g. kesavaya namah) (and thus
complete the thousand names).
18. With powders of fragrant and auspicious materials he should
make the incense-burning of the Da£ahga type and with Amrta etc.
19. He should prepare a lamp with a pair of wicks filled with
ghee. He should make the great offering of pure food according to his
capacity.
20. One should place (in a plate) on a four-footed stool Samyava
(i.e. a cake of wheat fried with ghee and made oblong in shape, spread
over with sugar), Payasa (i.e. rice boiled in milk), Apupa (a small
round cake of flour and meal), Saskuti-khanda (a piece of a kind of
baked cake), Laddukas (sweet balls), PUrika (a kind of cake filled in
ghee or oil, called Purl in Marathi), Polika (a cake with sweet material
inside and baked, called PojT in Marathi), boiled rice mixed with kidney
beans, condiments, curds, milk, ghee etc.
21. He should, with affection, make him take meals and offer
water at intervals (to drink). In half a Muhurta (24 minutes) he should
give water to wash hands therewith.
22. The remnants of the food of the Lord, having been assigned
to Visvaksena and other deities should be placed aside for one’s own
sake. The ground should be cleansed.
23. As ‘mouth-perfume’ to bring fragrance to the breath of the
deity, he should give a betel leaf with the powder of betel-nut, cloves,
cardamom, nutmeg and other such materials wrapped in it.
24. Giving a coconut and other fruits and Daksina as per one’s
capacity, he should perform the waving of light (before the Lord) ac
companied with instrumental music.
25. After offering him a handful of flowers, he should then praise
him with eulogies meant for him. He should glorify his name while
singing and dancing in his presence. (This is the Klrtana form of Bhakti.)
26. After performing it (Klrtana) for a Muhurta (48 minutes) and
circumambulating the deity, he should prostrate himself like a staff,
slightly transversal to the South, on the ground.
27. A man should prostrate himself touching the ground with eight
parts of the body (viz. two hands, two feet, two knees, chest and head)
Плх.29.28-36 339
or five parts of his body (viz. two hands, two feet and head); but a
woman should pay obeisance with only the five parts of her body and
never otherwise.
28. The prostration is called A$tdhga (‘eight-limbed’)1when it is
performed with two feet, two hands, two knees, chest, head, sight,
speech and mind.
29. The prostration is called Pahcdhga (‘five-limbed’) when it is
performed with two hands, mind, (bending down of) head, speech and
sight.2 (There are six factors involved, though it is called Pahcdhga
unless we presume the pair of hands as one.) In the performance of
worship these two types of prostrations are superior.
30. “O Lord, I have submitted myself to you. Please protect me
who am afraid of Samsara." Praying to him thus, he should pursue his
regular Vedic studies (recitation) to the best of his abilities.
31. After meditating on the rest and after taking (permission) given
by him reverently by head, one should establish as before the invoked
Radha and Krsna in the lotus of his heart and should send away all the
Ariga-devas to their respective places.
32. After laying down the idol of Hari in a cane-box for rest or
shutting up the image in the temple by closing the door, he should
perform Vaisvadeva (‘offering of cooked food to all gods’).
33. Distributing the remnant of food offered to Hari among his
dependents and after enjoying (i.e. consuming) it himself, he should
pass the remaining part of the day in (listening to or narrating) his
stories etc.
34. He who daily performs the great worship as per procedure
stated above, and worships Visnu with devotion, becomes his (i.e. Visnu’s)
attendant.
35. Ascending in a refulgent heavenly car coveted by Devas, the
worshipper, endowed with a brilliant celestial body, goes to Hari’s
region called Goloka.
36. Or even if he performs everyday worship of Hari, he attains
his desired objects along with (the four objectives of human life, viz.)
Virtue (Dharma), Wealth, Pleasure and Final Emancipation.
1. PUja-РгаШ а (p.88) describes these two types of prostrations on the author
ity of Vyasa but they are probably traditional verses of unknown authorship as
given above. Verse 28 defines As(£Aga but gives three more, making it ‘EkadalaAga’.
But the parts of the body actually touching the ground are eight. Smrti Candrikd
I, p.204 supports v 28 above.
2. In this the body does not touch the ground except in the case of feet. The
prescription of this type of prostration to women is obvious.
340 SkandaPurana
Vedas and who are practising Sankhya and Yoga, will never attain
Siddhi (i.e. Moksa).
CHAPTER THIRTY
Skanda said:
1. Having heard the procedure of the worship of Vasudeva in this
way, Narada became pleased. He addressed again the supreme precep
tor of sages.
Narada said:
2. The Kriya-Yoga bestowing the great fruit (i.e. liberation from
Samsara) has been properly elucidated by Your Lordship. It should be
practised with concentrated mind by persons desirous of Siddhi (Mokja).
3. О excellent preceptor! But control of the mind is very diffi
cult to be achieved even by persons endowed with knowledge. What
can one say about those men whose minds are involved in Karmas in
this world!
4. Except that (i.e. control of the mind) the worship of Hari is
not conducive to desired fruit. Hence it behoves you to expound to me
the means of controlling it.
Skanda said:
5. Thus enquired by the sage, Narayana, the Lord of sages, the
omniscient friend of Nara, spoke to Narada.
I. I have thus translated Talu on the basis of Yogic Texts, even though the
dictionary meaning of Talu is Palate.
344 Skanda Purana
CHAPTER THIRTYONE
Skanda said:
1. Having heard properly (and faithfully) all this sacred (consis
tent with the sacred Law) speech of the Lord (Narayana), the sage, all
whose doubts were resolved, spoke to him with his palms folded in
reverence.
Narada said:
2. All my doubts have been cleared with your favour, О revered
Sir. The greatness of Vasudeva has been easily grasped by me.
3. For some time, I shall perform penance here along with you,
and always hear (discourses on) knowledge. Thereby I shall make myself
mature.
Skanda said:
4. After saying this and having been permitted by him (Narayana),
Narada stayed there for one thousand celestial years, performing pen
ance.
5. Everyday, as permitted by time, he heard from Hari’s (Narayana’s)
mouth (discourses on) Dharma, knowledge etc. The king of Yogis at
tained maturity there.
6. He developed extreme affection for Snkrsna, the soul abiding
in all. That leader of Bhagavatas became always engaged in singing
(in praise of) the good qualities of the Lord.
7. The Lord (Narayana) being pleased (with Narada) spoke to the
accomplished Yogin who had attained the deepest faith and highest
proficiency in devotion (Bhakti), words which were conducive to the
(spiritual) welfare of all.
Skanda said:
9. Obeying this order of the preceptor of the world with (i.e.
bowing down) his head, while (i.e. before) departing from that place,
he stood there eulogizing him (Narayana), paying obeisance to him
with hands folded in reverence.
Narada said:
10. Repeated obeisance to you, О Lord, the preceptor of the world,
О Narayana of supernatural divine form. You are the mine of infinite
beneficent and auspicious qualities. Be always specially affectionate
to me, your slave.
11. You are Vasudeva, the Abode (Bearer) of the universe; you
perform penance for the welfare of the world. You are the Lord of the
masters of Yoga, stabilized in quiescence. You are the Lord of those
who seek pleasure in spiritual pursuits. You are the great preceptor of
Paramahamsas (ascetics of the highest order).
12. You are all-pervading, the most prominent one among sages;
you are the imperishable soul, the controller of JIvas (living beings)
and gods; you are the witness (of everything), the great Person, the
self-dependent one (not controlled by others). Kala (Time, the destroyer
of all) became great by (a mere gesture of) your eyebrow.
13. О Lord, you indulge in the sport of creation etc. of the world
as the soul of Maya-Purusa but still you are not the doer; you are
devoid of attributes, aggregate of all beings, Supreme Brahman, greater
than the great.
14. You are the Truth. You are self-luminous; your power is be
yond comprehension or reasoning capacity; your form is worthy of being
contemplated by those whose selves are identified with Brahman. You
are the preceptor of Brhadvrata (i.e. Mahavrata). You are the chief of
great sages, О subduer of the pride of the god of Love by your prowess.
15. It is because of your brilliance and prowess that anger, addic
tion, envy, greed which are the chief enemies of performers of penance,
are never capable of even entering yoUT hermitage.
16. You are constituted of the Vedas, of knowledge; you are the
path of immortality ; you consist of Dharma; you are the support of the
creation of Dharma; you have uprooted the source (or creation) of
346 SkandaPurdna
CHAPTER THIRTYTWO
Text-transmission of Vasudeva-Mahatmya
Skanda said:
1. After eulogizing the Lord (Narayana) Narada went away from
that place and arrived at first at Vyasa’s hermitage called $amyaprasa.
1 He was affectionately honoured there by rising up from the
seat to welcome him, offering a seat and other formalities. He ex
pounded the Ekantika Dharma to him (Vyasa) who was desirous to
know it.
3. The sage then went to the assembly of God Brahma. There he
Шх.32.3-16 347
taught it to Devas, Pitrs and great sages who attended it (i.e. the assembly)
while God Brahma listened to it.
4. Sun-god who was present there, again heard the whole of that
Dharma from Narad a as he had heard it from Narayana formerly.
5. He respectfully narrated it to Valakhilyas who go ahead of
him. They told Devas like Indra and others who assembled on Mount
Meru.
6. Having heard this Dharma from them, Sage Asita narrated it
to Pitrs when he happened to go to the world of manes, О excellent
Brahmana.
7. The Pitrs including Aryama and others told it to King Santanu
who narrated it accurately to his son Bhlsma.
8. At the end of the Bharata War, he (Bhlsma) while lying on
a bed of arrows, narrated it to Dharmaraja who enquired about it in a
big assembly.
9. Even Narada who respectfully attended that assembly heard
it and narrated it to Sankara on Mount Kailasa. He (in his turn) told
me, О excellent sage.
10. О Brahmana, this has been narrated by me to you who abide
by Dharma and enquired about it because my father told me that this
Dharma should be given (i.e. taught) to the deserving ones.
11. By whomsoever was this glory of the Lord of Sattvatas
(Vasudeva) heard, he (spontaneously) had great faith in it (leading to)
his personal liberation from Samsara.
12. On hearing the greatness of the son of DevakT (Krsna) as
glorified by Bhlsma, even the royal sage Yudhisthira along with his
brothers was delighted.
13. On learning that his maternal uncle’s son (Krsna) was the
cause of all causes, the highly intelligent one was merged in the ocean
of wonder.
14. The king regarded that the Vyuhas (manifestations) such as
Vasudeva (Sankarsana, Pradyumna and Aniruddha) and all the incarna
tions like the Divine Boar and others were those of the Lord of Rama.
15. Then the king (Yudhisthira) along with his younger brothers
became extremely devoted to Krsna of divine (yet) human body, О
excellent Brahmana.
16. On hearing this story (i.e. exposition of this Dharma) even all
Brahmanical, royal and divine sages who were present in that assem
bly became wonder-struck.
17. Having come to know that Krsna was veritable Supreme Brah
348 SkandaPurana
man in a human form, they, bowing down to him with reverence, betook
themselves to his devotion.
18. This is his greatness. Hence, О piously disposed one, yoy also
resort to that Vasudeva with whole-hearted devotion.
19. The glory of &ri Vasudeva which results in the mitigation (and
final extinction) of evil desires and which enhances devotion unto the
Lord, has been narrated by me to you.
20-21. Whatever episodes in this Purana have been narrated, their
essence has been (as if) churned and extracted and it is this, О Brahmana.
It is the essence of Vedas and Upanisads, of Sarikhya and Yoga, of
Pancaratra and entire Dharmagastra.
22. This extremely auspicious song sung by the Lord himself confers
wealth, fame, long life and is destructive of everything that is inaus
picious.
23. Whoever listens to this meritorious (Mahatmya), glorifies it
(to others) or reads it, his pure mind will be steadfast in Vasudeva.
24. Those men will be his Ekantika Bhaktas (i.e. devotees exclu
sively devoted to him), become identical with Brahman and in the end
go to the world of Brahman which is beyond darkness.
25. (Hereby) one desirous of Dharma will attain Dharma; a person
desirous (of any object) will get his desired object; a person covetous
of wealth will obtain wealth; one having the object of getting Moksa,
will attain excellent release from Samsara.
26. A student will get learning (or his desired lore); a sick person
will be relieved of his ailment. By merely hearing it all sins will get
annihilated.
27. A Brahmana will attain Brahmanic lustre, a Ksatriya king-
ship, a Vaigya wealth and a &udra happiness by listening to this
(Mahatmya).
28. A king who goes to battle after hearing this will win. A woman
will get the good fortune of the life-long firm devotion and favour of
her husband; a girl will secure her desired groom.
29. Whatever desire a man cherishes will he obtain from listening
to and glorifying this Mahatmya which is the crest-jcwel of all £astras.
30. Hence, О excellent Brahmana, you always read this with de
votion. And resort physically, verbally, mentally with devotion to the
Lord who is affectionate to his devotees.
Sauti said:
31. After drinking the nectarine speech emanated from the lotus-
H.ix.32.31-33 349
:: End of Vasudeva-Mahatmya ::
INDEX TO SECTION VII